MANKIND: CHILDREN
V O L
U M E I
JULY 1, 1970 - The strong must carry the weak. Keep His
Cross before you always. Prayer and sacrifice will be your guide
to the Light. Place not your trust in this world, for it is your
exile. Eternity is forever. The children are the innocent victims!
Pray for your children. My tears fall on all mothers. Come to
Me for I will comfort you! Pray! Pray always, My children. There
are many souls to be saved. I know of a mother's broken heart
that tears cannot mend. My Son will comfort you. I bless you all,
My children. Pray My Rosary daily. ..............The children
are the innocent victims, misguided by the dedicated who feed
half-truths and black abominations to starve young souls! Woe
to defiled man! Why do you deny My angels? The beauties of Heaven
are in their arms. Remember, My children, Heaven and earth will
pass away, all will be as white, but I hold the Key to the Kingdom
given by My Son. No one will come to the Father but through My
Son. Stay under My mantle, My children, and you will find peace.
Reject Me or My Son, and the end of life as you know it will be
hastened. (vol I page 10)
AUGUST 5, 1970 - Man has lost his purity. All parents must
guard their children's souls. Be firm with your children. The
fashions grieve all Heaven. (vol I page 12)
AUGUST 21, 1970 - Father against son, son against father,
daughter against mother! Woe to the man who refused to repent!
The brightest star in Heaven will be dimmed on that day! Mothers,
stand together to outwit the enemy that seeks to ravage your children!
(vol I page 13)
SEPTEMBER 28, 1970 - Many mothers hearts will be saddened.
Luciel takes the words from their hearts. We cast them down, but
they (devils) work their vengeance. Save your children. Guard
them constantly. They are in grave danger, I bring you mothers
together, for only you can save your children, for only you care.
(vol I page 14)
NOVEMBER 1, 1970 - I cannot admonish you enough to heed
the signs, I give you the Hourglass. The sand is going down! Pray!
Pray! My children, for your priests and all those of high positions
in My Son's Holy Church, for the greatest attacks from satan will
come to them! Turn not away from them, but pray, and show the
example of a Living Christ! This example must be brought to the
children by their parents. (vol page 16)
NOVEMBER 21, 1970 - Sin has now become a way of life in
your Country! Mothers, what will happen to your children outside
your home? Protect your children for there is no salvation outside
your home, the anchor of a good home dedicated to Christ the King!
..........Mothers clean out your daughters' closets! Better you
burn their clothes than to have their souls forever burning in
Hell! How sad to find the children who can no longer recognize
sin! (vol I page 17)
DECEMBER 7, 1970 - Woe to those parents in their lethargy
who refuse to avert the dark path, refuse to see the children
on the path to destruction! Like sheep they follow the leader
of evil! Those who know better, are pushing these souls, closer
to hell! They are using 'leadership' to destroy souls!(vol I page
18)
DECEMBER 24, 1970 - My poor children, you desire so much
in material things and so little in the spiritual! We look down
upon so many homes that are becoming the reason for the destruction
of children's souls. The memory of the Truth of My Son's existence
must be kept in the homes. (vol I page 18)
DECEMBER 26, 1970 - My child, My heart is saddened. I look
into homes and see the darkness within, for the children no longer
feel love or respect for their parents and others. It is already
a way of life. The blackest of sins has entered the homes. Mothers!
How dare you fall down in your duty as parents! Take your children
to be slaughtered! How dare you fall down in your duty as a parent,
and when you fall in your duty as a parent you will remain in
hell forever! (vol I page 19)
MAY 19, 1971 - Yes, My children, I am here with My Son
tonight. Our Hearts should be joyous but We have looked beyond
your state into the hearts of your countrymen. We see evil spreading
west. Already your children are having their souls desecrated.
..............Oh, My Jesus, how well the darkness covers the land.
We look upon hate, greed, paganism and murder. The darkest of
sins are being committed! Guard your children from the unholy
ray. Keep the monuments (statues) in your home, keep the Rosary
about your neck. These were not given for decoration. We cannot
bear the blasphemies against Us much longer. We admonish you to
save your soul and the souls of your loved ones. We are always
with you, just raise your hearts in prayer to Us. Your prayers
and sacrifices will be needed for your priests. (vol I page 27)
JULY 1, 1971 - You will teach children that We are truly
living people. That We live in the Heavens, just a short distance
from the farthest star. You will speak to children of the angels
and the many children who are here with Us. They also sorrow for
the condition of the Earth, for they also, My children, know how
very much Jesus is suffering. (vol I page 30)
JULY 15, 1971 - The children are truly victims of their
elders. We hold all parents responsible for the fall of their
children's souls. (vol I page 30)
JULY 25, 1971 - Oh, you blind, foolish parents who do not recognize the products of your laxity!! The blow, it will be visited upon you, for as you sow so shall you reap. Yes, you parents are filling the bodies and minds with luxuries, but you have chosen to starve the souls of your children. Your children are being led farther into the darkness. We do not see the light ahead for them. Oh, mournful sight, to see the destruction that is imminent upon you. Oh, mournful heart for you who do not listen. When this comes upon you, you will still not believe what you see with your eyes. Oh, My children, will you be counted among the few or will you be lost forever to Us?
...............The children are the victims of their elders. All
parents will be held responsible for the fall of their children's
souls. You parents must well remember that satan seeks to claim
the souls of all those destined for Our Kingdom but you parents
must now struggle to save them from the reach of satan for you
did not prepare yourselves when you were warned of the dangers
that were lying ahead of you. (vol I page 31)
AUGUST 5, 1971 - You must bring the angels into your homes.
Every child has been given a guardian. Have you made your children
aware of this fact? Yes, I could name the angels, guardian of
every one this evening but there are many things that We would
prefer to keep sacred rather than to expose them to unworthy souls.
We will not give graces to be cast off in mockery. Therefore you
parents will carry the greatest part of the load for you parents
will be responsible for your children's souls. (vol I page 32)
AUGUST 21, 1971 - We will not hold all children responsible
for their acts against God. We will hold all the parents responsible
for the destruction of their children's souls! When a soul falls,
it is only because there are too few prayers offered for them,
too few who cared enough. (vol I page 33)
SEPTEMBER 7, 1971 - My Heart bleeds for what I look upon!
These poor children, their souls and bodies destroyed by the enemy
that you have allowed to enter into your country. These children
suffer at the hands of their elders. Poison has been placed into
their bodies to destroy them! The destruction of the bodies is
as nothing for when this destruction comes into the soul, then,
My children, the tears may fall for the anguish of knowing the
loss for all eternity. There is no love left in the hearts of
your children. They are being conditioned to hate! To destroy!
All parents must look now, into the days that lie before you.
You will see how your children will turn upon you. Yes, you will
receive and reap the products of your laxity. Your city is as
a cesspool! All the evils come as a nucleus here and fan out.
When the hand comes upon you, you will be leveled for your licentiousness,
your greed, you immorality! The children must be saved for they
are the innocent victims of their elders! Parents who have grown
lax as they seek the pleasures of the world before, the spiritual
welfare of their children, their children's souls! (You will flee
from all false pastors! You will not be led into false obedience,
for in this way you will be led as sheep to the slaughter). (vol
I page 34)
SEPTEMBER 28, 1971 - All parents must rescue their children
from the evils of error! We advocate the instructions of your
children in the Faith. We do not want their teachers to be the
adversary's helpers, the followers of the agents of hell who do
not recognize the truth. .......Weep not for Me, My child, but
cry for your children. But mothers cry for your children for they
are the true victims! (vol I page 36)
DECEMBER 24, 1971 - I wish to bring you tidings of great
joy, but, My children, tonight there is great sorrow in Our Hearts.
We look upon a full conspiracy. The evil is widespread throughout
your country. Many have fallen because of their love of money
and power over the peoples. It is those who do not recognize their
God as being the Eternal Master, it is they who have developed
the plan of destruction of your children and your country. An
evil power enshrouds your world now, a power strengthened by the
demons now loosed from the abyss. We see the earth covered in
darkness. The victims of your decadent society are your children,
the innocent victims of their elders. Have you not recognized
the advent of anti-Christ into your land! Into your government,
your schools, your news medias, and yes, now into My Son's House
(Church)! (vol I page 40)
MARCH 24, 1972 -We place the greatest responsibility upon
parents at this time; to guard and armor their children's souls,
from the evil which will increase! Oh, My children, if only you
could look into the few days in earthly years and see what is
to come upon you! You will prepare yourself well for this day!
(vol I page 44,45)
MARCH 25, 1972 - Be knowledgeable, My children, and understand
that he (satan) will not come to you as himself; he can possess
the body of any unclean soul, be it man, woman, or child! I repeat
to you, now, that all parents will be held responsible for the
fall of their children's souls! Give them a good foundation and
when they are subject to the storms of evil they will not crumble
under the onslaught (or surrender). (vol I page 45)
APRIL 10, 1972 - Your young people are being seduced! We
place the greatest responsibility for their falling on the parents
and the teachers. ............Many of Our images are being removed
from among you. Poor misguided children, and teachers! Do you
not recognize the hand of satan! Do you not know that out of sight,
out of mind is a proven fact? The young minds must have images,
or they will cast their eyes on creations of darkness. The conditions
in My Son's House, and in your world, is long in developing. Satan
and his agents have worked their plan well among you. (vol I page
50)
MAY 10, 1972 - Many young souls are coming to Us unprepared!
Whatever shall We do with them? Many young souls must be purified
in long years of purgatory. ..............There are parents who
are not practicing true discipline with their children. Permissive
attitudes, while parents grow lax; parents who do not watch the
forms of entertainment of their children; many young souls are
losing their purity, learning to accept sin as a way of life.
Woe to these parents! What are you doing? Have you tried to eliminate
this evil from your world from your lives? Do you not know that
this is all the evil plan to destroy you and your children? What
are you doing to change this? (vol I page 51)
MAY 30, 1972 - I want you to recognize Joan of Lorraine.
Your children will be guided by the spirit of Joan. Your children
follow idols of darkness. Make Joan known to them! (vol I page
52)
Send a chain of Rosaries throughout your land. All We have given
through the ages to protect you, satan is working to take away
from you, so you will be defenseless. Open your hearts and come
to Us in belief. Do not let satan take the protection of Our angels
from you. Your children do not recognize the angels. Tell them
of the angels! (vol I page 52,53)
JULY 25, 1972 - St. Joseph pointed to the children and
said, "The example of the parents is poor. I give great heart;
the children will not be lost when they have been the victims
of their elders. Heaven does not close the door on the innocent.
..............(Our Lady) All mothers will now see that their children
remain close to the sacraments. Many children will be taken out
of the world in the plague. Many parents will shed bitter tears,
but it will be too late! (vol I page 57)
AUGUST 5, 1972 - Veronica: Our Lady pointed to a map over
the waters: Chinese people, black people, floods, plague. Our
Lady said: This is in small measure what is in store for your
country. Many children will be taken from your country. It is
the only recourse to save them from a bad parenthood, a misguiding
society; from a land that has turned its back on its God! (vol
I page 59)
SEPTEMBER 14, 1972 -Your children are the misled victims
of bad example; bad example of your teachers, bad example of many
men in the House of God, bad example by your government and your
schools. Satan rules your acts now, but he shall not capture you
all, for I have given you the plan for your salvation numerous
times. Before these trials are over you will all have had the
chance to make your choice, and if you fall, it will be of your
own will! Stand forth, My children! Defend the Cross of My Son!
Stand forth in Truth! Do not succumb for your temporary pleasures
and riches of the world. (vol I page 65)
FEBRUARY 1, 1973 - There will be visited upon your country
a plague. Many children will be taken from your world. It will
be an act of mercy from the Father. Many young souls will be destined
for the kingdom of hell, claimed by Lucifer, were they to remain
upon earth. (vol I page 79)
MARCH 25, 1973 - Do not depend on the world to bring the
truth to your children. This truth you, as parents have been instructed
in and it is you who will have to take over the instruction of
your children at the present time. (vol I page 91)
MAY 10, 1973 - Your children must be protected against
the world, your world of evil. Better that they starve their bodies
than to starve their souls. The seeking of worldly gain has sent
many souls into hell. The example being shown in many homes is
abominable. Many parents will pay a high price in the loss of
the Kingdom for their lack of discipline and proper direction
of the souls entrusted to them. (vol I page 101)
JUNE 16, 1973 - Instruct your children well in the salvation
of their souls. Know that when they leave beyond the doors of
your home, they will be subject to satan. Teach them, My children,
parents, the value of prayer. Prayer must be returned to you homes.
Your example must be one of purity. Your example must be one
of fortitude. And most of all, My children, remember: You must
show and practice love for the Father. (vol I page 110)
AUGUST 21, 1973 - I repeat: Your country will not escape
the great Chastisement. Many will die in the great flame of the
Ball of Redemption. Have you prepared yourselves, My children?
Have you prepared your children and other members of your family?
Have you brought them back into the grace and light of the Father
before this great Chastisement? No-o-o! Many of you have laughed
and scorned My warning. (vol I page 125)
FEBRUARY 1, 1974 - My children, know the value of these
sacramentals. Guard your children well. You must awaken to the
knowledge that you will not be protected without the sacramentals.
Guard your children's souls. They must be surrounded with an aura
of purity. Remove them if necessary from the sources of contamination,
be it your schools or even false pastors. Is not the destruction
of one small soul heartbreaking to the Father? The value of one
small soul recovered far surpasses all the saints ascending to
Heaven. Therefore, be cautious with your children, My children,
for it is you who will suffer when their souls go to satan. (vol
I page 164)
MARCH 18, 1974 - We place the greatest responsibility to
salvation of the young souls upon the parents. Do not expect those
without your household, to bring the knowledge of the Kingdom
to your children, for their knowledge is not of Heaven, but their
knowledge is of the prince of darkness. Satan, Lucifer, most despicable
of creatures. (vol I page 170)
MARCH 24, 1974 - Satan has set upon earth modes of life
for your children that are soul distracters. Looking for My Son,
they go aimlessly in every direction and leave the narrow road,
wandering onto the path that will lead them to satan. (vol I page
178)
APRIL 13, 1974 - Satan has entered into the highest places
in your civil life, My child and in the Houses of My Son throughout
your world. His reign will be short in earth-years. I have not
come to your earth to fill you with fear. I have come to prepare
you for the days of trial. For countless earth-years I have chosen
to give you the plan for your salvation. Should you cast this
plan aside, you will enter unto the wide road which leads to your
destruction. It is of your free will that you will give your soul
to satan or you will lead it unto the path of light. The road
to satan is easy in your human nature, but Heaven is earned very
hard. Many are called but so few are chosen. It will not be an
easy road, My children, to follow My Son. (vol I page 188,189)
I cannot bring My voice forth, for the sorrow in My heart stills
My voice. The Father plans great punishment upon your earth. It
is not out of malice, but out of love for you that He will allow
this cleansing. The Father will chastise those He loves........Since
you have chosen to give this to mankind; I have expected this
of you, My child; you will learn another simple lesson of the
Father. Do not expect to be recognized by mankind, for its reward
is not worth, My child, your efforts. Do your work as given, expecting
no reward or recognition from mankind, for the Father has a special
plan for all He chooses to do His work. You see, My child, it
is well worth waiting for, for when you receive glorification
from mankind, you have already received your reward. (vol I page
192,193)
JUNE 18, 1974 - There is great error, My children, in the
world today. Satan has poisoned many minds, even among those who
were given great grace of knowledge and the power to direct the
young souls. They are using this power to destroy. Know now that
nothing is hidden from the Father. All will be held accountable
for their part in the destruction of a young soul. We do not set
you up to judge your brothers and sisters, My children, but your
example must be one that is constructive. .....There are many
symptoms of the basic illness of mankind. Godlessness, My child.
They have forgotten their Father in Heaven. The Father will chastise,
My child, those He loves. (vol I page 221)
I cannot take away the plan that will be put in motion by the
Father soon. Gradually many children will be removed from
the earth to save their souls. Parents, heed this
admonition now that you will save yourselves great sorrow if you
now prepare your children. I cannot, My child, at this time give
you added knowledge of what is to come. I can only as a Mother
direct you, My children, to listen and heed My warnings. Prepare
your children, for many will be taken from your world. You do
not understand; you cannot understand the great sorrow of loss.
It will be great comfort to know that you have prepared your children.
(vol I page 222)
AUGUST 5, 1974 - Your homes must be a refuge for your children.
Keep the monuments, the statues, in your homes and teach your
children, as parents, the basic foundation of their faith and
they will not be caught in the web of satan that is slowly, like
an octopus, reaching out in all directions and devouring the young
and the old. (vol I page 239)
SEPTEMBER 7, 1974 - Death will be commonplace in your world.
Many children will be removed from among you. The agents of hell
will multiply. Pray, for prayer is the greatest weapon given to
you now to remove this evil from among you. (vol I page 253)
DECEMBER 31, 1974 - Many children shall be taken into the
Kingdom. Tears will fall from the eyes of parents but those who
are in the light will understand the plan of the Father. (vol
I page 324)
AUGUST 14, 1975 - The teaching is poor, to say the least.
You must restore to your homes; the pictures, the objects of worship,
the statues, so that your children will receive a small knowledge
of the existence of the Eternal Kingdom and those inhabitants
of the spirit. Unless you do this, My children, your children
in turn, will be lost to you, and to the Kingdom of the Father.
(vol I page 399)
SEPTEMBER 6, 1975 - Your children shall seek and not find
the light unless, as a parent, you bring discipline and the knowledge
of your God within your homes to your children. Do not expect
others to nurture, to feed the souls of your children. You will
not judge the pastors in the churches of the world. You will pray
for them. However, evil is never condoned. Your allegiance is
to the Eternal Father in Heaven; offend Him not! Not for a mere
man shall you offend the Eternal Father! (vol I page 408)
OCTOBER 2, 1975 - Your children are being raised to know
no sin! They conduct themselves as pagans worshipping false idols,
giving themselves to mind destructive drugs, seeking pleasures
that are abominations to the human flesh. Parents, are you blind?
Do you not see your children, what is happening to them? What
have you done to save their souls? You are too busy in your worldly
lives! You pile silver upon gold but have you prepared your children's
souls with merit to enter the Kingdom of the Eternal Father, or
are you passing these tender souls into darkness and the realm
of the prince of darkness, satan? There shall be much woe and
gnashing of teeth, and sorrow, in the hearts of many parents,
tears that will flow. Too late, too late! (vol I page 422)
As parents, your duty is manifold. You must teach your children
within your homes. You must safeguard their purity, modesty! Mothers,
your daughters, do you permit them to expose their flesh to lustful
eyes? Are you stripping from their young souls modesty and purity
of purpose and spirit? What kind of example are you giving as
parents in your homes? (vol I page 423)
NOVEMBER 20, 1975 - The parents of earth must make a firm
effort to safeguard their children by giving stern direction,
if necessary, and not be permissive in the rearing of their children.
Do not allow you children to rule you, but set a good example
and use a firm discipline. ...........The young children must
be taken by their parents to the temples, the Houses of My Son,
throughout your world. They must learn by habit a good example
of cleansing of their soul by CONFESSION. The good priests of
earth, those who have been dedicated and received this consecration
from My Son, must take these tender souls and nurture them in
their Faith. (vol I page 438)
The Eternal City shall face soon, My child, a blood bath. The
world shall be bathed in fire!...Many will be taken before this
great catastrophe! Do not weep for the children who are removed
from your earth, for it is in the Merciful Heart of the Father
that will gather them before the baptism of fire. (vol I page
442)
DECEMBER 6, 1975 - The children must be guided by the family.
The Truth, the Faith, the Tradition, must be instilled in their
hearts by the mothers and fathers of a family. Do not expect your
children to go beyond your doors and be instructed in truth, for
the world has been given to satan. Many who should be showing
a firm example, have gone the easy way of the flesh, for they
care more for the treasures and glory of this world-earth, that
what the future has for them. Hell is open wide, the abyss is
filling continuously with souls that have fallen into darkness.
Will you not rescue them, My children, with your acts of sacrifice
and prayer? (vol I page 450)
DECEMBER 27, 1975 - My child, all throughout earth, there
is mass slaughter now of the innocent children, the unborn, and
this has extended now past the unborn. Many children brought into
the world are being killed, My child, at their birth. Shout this
to all. Your hospitals have given themselves to depravity. They
are taking needlessly lives, My child............Yes, My child,
it is at the knowledge of the parents. Shall you build a master
race? Shall you create only a perfect individual? What shall you
do to accomplish this? Shall you eradicate by murder all who are
not perfect? Man has no right to place judgment on who is to live
or die, My children. (vol I page 460)
MARCH 18, 1976 - St. Joseph: We look into many homes and
we find no close bond of unity. And why? Because you prefer to
keep a diabolical machine in your homes, those televisions! These,
my children, are all creations of satan. The family does not pray
together. The mother does not bring the knowledge of God to her
children. The father seeks his way in the world, gathering money
and material things that are all passing. Cleanse your homes!
Start anew! Work together for your reward in the eternal Kingdom.
Your homes must be now a fortress against the evil that surrounds
you. (vol I page 477)
JUNE 24, 1976 - Parents, protect the souls of your children.
Teach them modesty and piety. Keep them pure of spirit, for they
will soon reach the darkness. Once your children leave the safety
of your homes, they must have armor about them, sacramentals,
and graces based on faith, My children. This will take them through
the darkness, the maze of destruction that satan has set all about
them. (vol I page 508)
JULY 15, 1976 - O My children, if you could only recover
the peace and quiet of spirit that was once much evident in your
homes and now has been replaced by all manner of creations of
satan, creations that distract the minds of the innocent, creations
that have taken the knowledge of their God from the children,
while fathers and mothers are lost as they run to and fro gathering
all the material wealth upon earth, seeking pleasures that are
soul destroyers, and setting an example that can be and lead to
an abomination within the family circle.............The parents,
the mother and the father, My children, must set a firm example
to their children. When these children leave the family's home,
they are subjected to all trials of error, deception, delusion,
and lies...........The parents of many have fallen into the error
of feeding the body and starving the young souls. These souls,
in the eyes of the Eternal Father, are young flowers that must
be nourished with pure waters of truth, purpose, dedication to
the road; place them on the road that will lead to the Eternal
Kingdom of God your Father in Heaven. (vol I page 515)
But where are your children? They are fast approaching their destruction.
Many of your children have gone now beyond the point of no return.
Many parents must accept a penance, a severe penance, for the
recovery of their children's souls. (vol I page 516)
OCTOBER 6, 1976 - Your children, their hearts, their souls
are empty. They no longer have knowledge of the supernatural.
They are fast heading into a world of reasoning that permits sin
as a way of life. And why? Because you, as leaders have destroyed
the trust placed in you; you have betrayed Me and your Faith,
and as such, you command from Heaven your own destruction! Shall
you stand before Me, O Red Hat and Purple Hat, shall you stand
before Me and say that your teaching has been pure in My sight?
I say unto you: I will spit you out, as the vermin you are, into
the flames of eternal damnation............All that is rotten
will fall. Seeds that must grow into flowering plants must receive
pure waters. Many of these flowers must be removed from God's
garden upon earth to save their souls, My children. It is better
now that you all weep for your children, for many are called,
but few are chosen. (vol I page 550)
NOVEMBER 26, 1976 - The young children must now be given
a firm solid foundation of their faith by their parents, My children.
Do not expect others to take over your responsibility as leaders,
as parents, as guardians of the souls of your children. I assure
you, O parents, that if you neglect this duty you will cry bitter
tears of remorse. There will be great woe set upon your world
by the evil forces of the man of perdition 666, and O parents,
in this knowledge think now and prepare now the souls of your
children, that you shall not in the future cry bitter tears of
regret and doubt and uncertainty as you question whether your
children have been saved; whether your children have entered into
the Kingdom of the Father in Heaven. (vol I page 560)
DECEMBER 7, 1976 - My Mother's Message is coming to mankind
in its final stage. Her tears fall upon a degenerate generation.
My Mother has been received by many with dishonor and disloyalty.
You, O man of little faith, you who walk in darkness, you are
not hidden from the all-knowing eyes of the Eternal Father. I
send upon you a final warning, a cry for penance, atonement, and
sacrifice. I shall not wait until the young have lost all knowledge
of their God by atheistic teachers. (vol I page 568,569)
DECEMBER 28, 1976 - Prepare your children well, and they
shall not bring sorrow to your hearts. Children must return to
the fold. Children must have respect for their parents; respect
for their elders; and children must remain pure of heart and pure
of spirit. This We find lacking now in your world. The purity
of your children has been destroyed! ...........Parents must struggle
now to retain the Faith in the lives of their children. You must
accept the responsibility for the salvation of your children's
souls. Teach them, prepare them, fortify them against the rigors
of the attacks of satan when they leave the comfort and the safety
of their homes. Do not expect your pastors to guide you now. Many
have fast fallen into darkness, and must be brought out themselves.
(vol I page 576)
V O L
U M E I I
FEBRUARY 10, 1977 - My children, parents, you must guard,
safeguard your children's souls. You cannot expect others to do
this for you. As parents, you have been given a God given trust
to instruct your children. In your world and a polluted mankind,
a fallen generation, little children cannot retain their innocence
of heart; little children cannot retain their modesty and purity
of intention; little children are being educated in filth, corruption,
and the breaking of the Commandments of your God. Woe, woe, woe
to a man who defiles the young! Better that he had died in his
mother's womb! (vol II page 24)
MAY 18, 1977 - Parents, I caution you, I warn you to train
your children at home; keep the light of Faith in their hearts.
Without this light, O parents, your children will turn upon you
and many shall kill! (vol II page 43)
MAY 28, 1977 - Little children, victims of their elders!
Defilement among children by adults! Woe to the man who scandalizes
the young! Better that he had dies in his mother's womb! Suffer
all little children to come to Me. The Kingdom of Heaven, the
children should symbolize the spirit of innocence and purity and
faith; but We see the most vilest of acts being committed against
the purity of children. And I say unto you: Better that a man
receives a millstone about his head and is cast into the sea than
to defile the young!.............Reams of pornography! Abuses
to children! Ages almost from the cradle! I say unto you: You
have called down upon yourselves a just punishment from your God!
(vol II page 49)
JUNE 4, 1977 - My children, all who are of conscionable
age shall be held accountable for the salvation of their soul!
You cannot place the lives of your children, their spiritual lives,
into the hands of others for these hands have been despoiled.
Many children just beyond the cradle are being now degraded and
de sanctified and destroyed morally by their elders for profit
and gain. (vol II page 55)
JUNE 16, 1977 - I have cautioned you, parents, to protect
your children. They must not be without a sacramental upon them!
We are now at war, My children, a war of the spirits, far greater
a war than man has ever experienced in the history of his creation.
It is a war to a final battle. The sheep are being separated from
the goats, the wheat from the chaff. My children, have you prepared
your household for the test? (vol II page 57)
AUGUST 13, 1977 - Protect your children and your families
with sacramentals. Do not go out without your sacramentals. All
are marked for death who are not in the state of grace! All are
marked for death who are not in the state of grace!..............He
is here. He has entered upon your country in 1975. Your children
have been victims to him. The spread of drugs was for reason,
to break down the morale and to give your children over to satan.
Your children have been desecrated in black mass. Your children
have been desecrated in the schools and the governments by the
government leaders who do not care. (vol II page 75)
Mothers, protect your daughters purity. Allow them no rein to
be free in choice. Guard them well, for they will be the victims
of black mass which shall rage throughout your country............My
children, bring your children back before it is too late. Satan
has a plan to take them in. They will be his agents in sin. They
will be sent throughout the country to kill. And they will kill
within the homes. It will be mother against father, daughter against
mother, father against son. It is because of sin. Sin is insanity..........666
himself now is loosed from hell, satan. He has great powers because
he will teach them miracles, show them miracles, that will convince
them that he is satan. In this manner he will promise them eternal
life, until he has their souls, and damned forever they will be.
Too late to their knowledge will they know they have sold their
souls to satan!............Children shall disappear from the streets,
never more to be seen, taken into covens and buried in their burial
grounds. Know it now; don't cast it aside and say that this is
a reign of terror. Do not cast it aside, for your child may be
next..............Only a child of conscionable age, who is in
the state of sin mortal, shall be attacked. The attacks shall
become more frequent unless you pray. Pray, My children, a constant
vigilance of prayer now. Keep it going throughout your country.
Pray that those who are working and praying shall remove this
demon from among you. (vol II page 76)
OCTOBER 6, 1977 - O My children, the parents of your nation,
the parents of the world, must now assume a full responsibility
for the salvation of their children's souls. You cannot depend
upon your school systems, your entertainment medias, your avenues
of knowledge to the young, for they have become polluted and are
cesspools of error and degradation. In the plan of the Eternal
Father, My children, it has now become necessary to remove many
of the young from the world. (vol II page 93)
NOVEMBER 19, 1977 - Your country and many countries upon
earth have given themselves over to paganism, and pursuing this
course has taken the young down the path to abominations. Your
children are now victims for they have entered into a form of
idol worship. Your children are victims now, because they have
not been given a foundation of their Faith. The laxity falls upon
the parents, because through countless years of My wandering upon
earth I counseled you, I directed you, I warned you to watch your
children, to safeguard their souls from the evil that has entered
now into all of the medias of your world. ...........While man
has cast aside the knowledge and the belief of the supernatural,
satan and his agents have had the time now to take a firm hold
upon your children. O My children, all manner of foul and debased
acts shall be committed by your children. The teachers now are
agents of hell. (vol II page 101)
NOVEMBER 21, 1977 - Your children, are the principal victims
of the demons now that are loosed upon earth. O parents, I have
begged you and counseled you in the past to guard your children's
souls and watch them well, for when they leave your homes they
are exposed to the agents of hell in human form. There is now
a legion of devils, demons upon earth. They can exist without
being seen, and that makes the position of your children and others
precarious in the struggle to save their souls. ...........Satan
is developing armies throughout your country and the countries
of the world. He will corrupt their minds and bodies, using drugs.
They will enter your children into all habits of perversion. Homosexual
bands will roam your streets killing and perverting the young.
No child shall be free from the attacks if you as parents do not
stand your guard..............Already Our hearts are torn because
of the grief of many parents who have lost their young to this
monstrous machine now that is gaining momentum throughout your
country and the world. My children, recognize now the evil. Do
something about it! Don't sit back and say, My neighbor will act,
or, this does not concern me. I assure you, My children, if you
do not act, you will be forced to act when it enters upon your
home.
My children, satanism, murder, corruption, perversion now is a
way of life among your young. Satan very cunningly and with purpose
entered into your colleges. He used the sinful minds of men to
bring his methods into your schools, and in many of My Son's Churches
now they are preparing for his entrance..............You will
all keep a constant vigilance of prayer going throughout your
country and the world. I admonish all parents now to spend at
least fifteen minutes of your day reading the Bible to your children
and your family. It is now a command from the Eternal Father!
For the little children no longer know or recognize the angel
guardians. The little children have no conception of the truth
of the Divinity or the existence of My Son. The little children
are now being taught the ways of satan. (vol II page 105)
The Eternal Father watches and waits for your penance and atonement.
His Heart, and the hearts of all personages of Heaven are saddened
by the lack of charity in the hearts of mankind. Your children
are being programmed to kill. You children are turning now to
false idols to worship. Your country has become now paganized.
.............Woe, woe, woe to the man who is responsible for the
destruction of a young soul! My children, it would be better if
that man had not emerged from his mother's womb, or a millstone
had been tied about his neck and cast into the sea, before he
committed his foul deeds.............My children, do not scoff
and turn your backs upon what is happening about you because it
has not touched your life. If you do not act now, every life shall
be touched by the agents of hell. (vol II page 106)
DECEMBER 7, 1977 - My children, habit is the way for guiding
your children in the Faith, repetition of the truth. (vol II page
108)
Veronica: Jesus said He is very concerned about the youth, the
young people of our country and the world. He is very concerned
also about the parents, for when the young children become victimized
by the satanic forces of the world, it will surely affect the
rest of the family, with great sorrow and distress brought to
the hearts of the parents. (vol II page 111)
DECEMBER 31, 1977 - My children, you are fast approaching a great Warning and Chastisement. Prepare your homes well. Prepare the souls of your children; many shall be removed to save them. (vol II page 114)
FEBRUARY 1, 1978 - Protect your children, O parents; protect
your families. Guide your children to Me in the Eucharist. I am
still there for a short time. For the enemies of your God plan
to take Me from your country. The Eternal Father would stop you
now but for the victim souls that plead for a reprieve. Their
prayers do not go unanswered, for the Eternal Father waits with
great patience, not wishing one be given to satan. (vol II page
118)
FEBRUARY 10, 1978 - My children, as I warned you in many
earth visitations, I warned you over and over that your children
shall be your scourge. It will be father against son, mother against
daughter. Murders will be rampant. Cannibalism! Children murdering
parents! For sin is insanity! (vol II page 121)
My children, parents, I beg you, for your salvation and the salvation
of your families, to retain the truth of faith, the light of faith
in your homes. Teach your children. Give them a firm foundation
of their Faith, the knowledge in truth. Do no allow false teachers
to destroy the souls of your children. Your homes must be made
a fortress against the evil. Darkness enshrouds the world. Evil
has accelerated. Protect your children, the young, for they are
the major ones to face attack by the agents of satan. (vol II
page 124)
MARCH 15, 1978 - Man has made sin a way of life and sin
is insanity. The young, the children, are the major victims now
of their elders, but woe to the parents for their lack of discipline.
Woe to the parents who have not guarded well the souls of their
children; for I say unto you, these very children shall turn upon
you. For it will be father against son and mother against daughter,
discord within the homes. (vol II page 128)
MAY 13, 1978 - My children, you must exercise your God
given sense and knowledge. I warned you in the past that all medias
are now controlled. Your children, by manner of the infernal boxes
in your homes, the televisions, are being now schooled to kill,
to sin. And many parents shall be murdered by their own children!
And why? Because you all failed to recognize what is happening
before your very eyes; your children are being programmed to kill.
A steady diet of violence will lead to the spirit being dulled
and the sensitivity being dulled until even murder is condoned,
with all manner of rationalizing for the commission of this sin
against your God and all mankind. (vol II page 145)
JUNE 10, 1978 - Your world has become a cesspool of errors,
giving itself over to fornication, immorality, idolatry and all
manner of foul pursuits. The major crisis is among the young.
How shall you rescue them but by your example and prayer.............You
will all make your homes a fortress of sanctity. Retain the Faith
in your homes and in the hearts of your children. We place a heavy
burden upon parents now, but by far, My children, this burden
shall be lightened for many, to their joy. But many shall receive
a far sadder burden in the near future! (vol II page 164)
JUNE 18, 1978 - My heart, as a Mother, is torn asunder
because of the permissive attitudes that are allowed by the teaching
fathers of My Son's Church. I hear little children of a tender
age of three and four being taught immorality of word and actions.
O My children, the sin upon your earth is far greater than any
sin in the past! Surely you will remember Sodom and the punishment
that fell upon that city.............My children, the cities of
earth are polluted with sin and are cesspools of error in teaching,
especially in the rearing of the young. O My children, many young
children shall be taken from the earth in order to protect them
from the pollution. (vol II page 166)
NOVEMBER 25, 1978 - Investigate, parents, what your children
are wearing upon the temples of satan, and there are hundreds
of them now, My children, in your country and in other nations.
Secretly they work to destroy your country, to destroy your children.
Openly they work under the names of socialism and communism, but
secretly their members labor for Lucifer, for the destruction
of souls, under the pain of death. Lucifer is the father of all
liars. He was a murderer from the beginning and he brings death,
only death to those who foolishly follow him. (vol II page 205)
MAY 23, 1979 - My children, remove from your households
all secular writings; read only your Bible, the Book of love and
life. Your children are being exposed to mind control. Your children
are being taught to sin, to hate, to murder, the elderly and aged.
Father against son, mother against daughter; strife within the
household, as satan seeks to claim the souls of the young. (vol
II page 213)
JUNE 18, 1979 - Your children, must be protected from the
evils that abound in your school systems in your country and most
nations throughout the world. They are being taught immorality
and a loss of faith in the supernatural the knowledge of their
God. All manner of heresy has been indoctrinated into their youthful
minds. It is a diabolical plan of Lucifer. (vol II page 227)
Many homes shall be torn asunder by the fall of the children.
Parents shall shed tears of anguish. Therefore, prevent this now
while your children are at a young age. Give them a firm foundation
of their faith. Be not afraid to speak out against heresy and
abominations, even if you have to do this against your clergy,
for many now have fallen in with the modernists, the socialists,
the communists, and some the satanists. Therefore, My children,
I make known to you the crisis that lies ahead. (vol II page 228)
JULY 14, 1979 - O My children and parents, I counsel you
as your Mother, I come to you with dire foreboding for your children
in My Heart because many are now into the web created by Lucifer
of false religions and the occult. (vol II page 230)
AUGUST 14, 1979 - Parents must guard their children, for
their purity, their spirituality, is being taken from them at
a tender, young age. Childhood, in the manner now of the evil
despots and the leaders of the governments of many nations, children
no longer are children but are to be led like robots and slaves.
...........Parents must exercise full discipline over their children
and bring a firm foundation of faith to their children. You cannot
now expect this in your schools or even My Son's Houses, His Church
upon earth. The agents of hell have a firm foot now in the door.
My children, are you going to fight for My Son? Are you going
to allow your country to fall? (vol II page 241)
SEPTEMBER 14, 1979 - Yes, you are all now being tested.
Sadly the young, the children, the youth of your world are the
major victims now because of the greed of many who have given
themselves over to humanistic seeking joining with all manner
of evil under the guise of humanism, communism, socialism and
satanism. As I warned you in the past, Lucifer and his agents
must enter into the body of a fallen soul to work his will. .........My
children and parents, listen to me well. You must not allow your
children to listen to recordings known as "rock and roll."
They have been specifically created by Lucifer and his agents
to seduce your children. They are the major instrument for leading
your children into the plague, the country-wide plague of drugs,
the country-wide plague of atheism, the country-wide and world-wide
plague of casting aside your God and substituting false gods and
religions...............You must remove from your homes these
diabolical agents of hell; the recordings of Lucifer, that will
put into your child a spell, a hypnotism leading to promiscuity,
deviant sex, homosexuality, drugs, murders, abortions and all
manner of foul deeds that could only be conceived in the mind
of the prince of darkness, Lucifer himself. He knows his time
grows short, and he now goes about the world deceiving even the
elect. (vol II page 247)
I have given you your armor through the direction of Heaven. You
must wear your sacramentals. You must be sure that your children
wear their sacramentals, for when they leave your homes, the safety
and armament of your own home, they then set forth into the world
that has been given now to satan. (vol II page 248)
OCTOBER 6, 1979 - Your children must be taught at home,
given a firm foundation of the truth, the knowledge of their Faith.
You must instill in their heads the love of God before the love
of any man. You must instill in their hearts the knowledge, that
they must work now to Father; as written and espoused through
many prophets through countless earth-years of time; written in
the Bible, your Book of Life and Love. ............My children,
your homes are not prepared well for your children, for you fill
them with mind destroyers. Your children are being enticed and
seduced through their mediums of entertainment. I have warned
you over and over to clean your house out; cleanse your home before
you weep! Many children shall turn against their parents, for
their minds shall be poisoned by satan. Murders shall abound;
there will be accidents that are not accidents. Sin is truly insanity.
(vol II page 258)
NOVEMBER 20, 1979 - My Mother has counseled you well to
prepare and protect your households. The hourglass has been turned
over several times to give you more time to do penance and take
the stigma of sin from your homes, and mankind in general. However,
man has sought success, and riches, and science to console him,
and instead, has found a void. And the children of these parents,
who have lived without faith and morals, are the major victims.
For as they wandered in a life that has been a void to them, they
have sought what they did not know in their human reasoning! But
the heart and the inborn conscience of God has sent them seeking,
but without firm direction, and this direction not coming from
not only the parents but the clergy in My House, they have found
instead, these poor misguided, misled children, they have found
death; death of the body, and death of the soul; death with drugs,
death of the souls with pornography, immorality, and the worship
of false idols and gods, even consorting with new religions based
on humanism and satanism. (vol II page 262,263)
NOVEMBER 24, 1979 - Do not allow your children to be taken
from you in spirit. The forces of evil, of darkness, are increasing
in their intensity. You will find now that there has been developed
in your scientific world a manner of mind-control through scientific
machinery and human mind-manipulation. In this manner will the
governing bodies of many nations seek to control your children,
and in that manner control the parent. (vol II page 268)
Now you have the human mind trying to probe into the realm of
the supernatural. How, My child and My children, can they enter
into the supernatural without becoming ensnared? No, My children,
you must avoid the occasions of sin. And I say this for one reason;
many of the young are accepting a religion so dangerous to their
human natures and capabilities of understanding that the parents
must alert their children to remain far from witchcraft and all
manner of supernatural probing. The eventual attachment and association
in occult-seeking is death; death of the soul and death of the
body. Why do I stress this to you, My children? You will understand
shortly. (vol II page 268,269)
MAY 30, 1981 - Pray always a constant vigilance of prayer.
Protect your children. Tears shall be shed, for many children
shall die in an epidemic uncontrollable by science. (vol II page
282)
JUNE 18, 1981 - Man upon earth has given himself over to
perversion, for sin has become a way of life. And the children,
O My child and My children, how I cry for your children. For would
not it be better at this time, My child, for the second part of
the secret to become a reality for the salvation of the young
souls? .............O My children, years upon earth, and what
has happened? What has happened among My children? Purgatory is
overflowing. Satan, the adversary, the prince of darkness, has
many now forever lost in hell. And who brings the children to
the knowledge of hell, of its existence?............But I tell
you now, as your Mother, that woe to the man who commits scandal
and chooses of his own free will, to cause the fall of a young
soul. For better that he had died in his mother's womb or a millstone
be put upon his head, about his neck, and cast into the sea, before
he brought scandal to the little ones. (vol II page 290)
My child and My children, I have counseled you on the approaching
plague among the children. Because of the sin of man, this cannot
be averted, this cannot be held back, My child. (vol II page 291)
MARCH 18, 1983 - O My child and My children, if I could
take you step by step, you would die of fear and of horror if
you could look behind the closed doors and see what is happening
to your children. Many now are being trained as adults with a
knowledge that cannot be absorbed into their young minds. Therefore
they become victims of their elders. (vol II page 278)
MAY 28, 1983 - Fathers will be attacked by their sons,
mothers shall find death at the hands of their children. This
has been told to you many years ago, but too few listen until
the evil comes into their homes. Then it is too late. Protect
your children from the evil that is fast accelerating throughout
the world. Your country, the United States of America, and Canada
shall not be free from invasion. That is why you must pray a constant
vigil of prayer going throughout the whole world, and you must
turn back from your sin or you will die!. (vol II page 388)
APRIL 14, 1984 - ........Children! The dear children,
what will become of them? What kind of an example is being set
in their homes? Parents who lack the light, how can they guide
your children? Send them to schools? That will be no escape, for
the children will be ensnared with evil........Oh, My Mother told
you many years ago, you were to bar your doors, for when your
children left their homes they would enter into a world that is
now being guided by satan to destroy your children. The only reason
that this is taking place is because you could not understand,
as a human being, the ways of Heaven. They are not the earth's
ways or human ways. ...........Oh, My Mother told you many years
ago you were to bar your doors, for when your children left their
homes they would enter into a world that is now being guided by
satan to destroy your children. The only reason that this is taking
place is because you could not understand, as a human being, the
ways of Heaven. They are not the earth's ways or human ways. (vol
II page 402)
JUNE 30, 1984 - Your children have become innocent victims
of their elders. Many parents are crying because their children
have been taken from them, never to be seen again. I want you
to know at this time, My child and My children, that there is
a great cult, a cult in your country now, that is taking children
from their homes to be grown up in an atmosphere of debauchery.
Oh My children, whatever shall become of you? (vol II page 408)
The children, the innocent children are victims of debauchery.
The children, many of them shall die. We shall set upon your nation,
and other nations of the world, a mysterious disease. But be it
known now: It will not be a mysterious disease but the hand of
the Eternal Father placed down to remove these innocent souls
before they are sent into debauchery. O My children, the missing
children in your countries are not just missing because they want
to be adopted, or others wished to take them into their homes
as children to be loved. They are being taken to be used in all
foul manners. (vol II page 409)
M E S
S A G E S
JULY 1, 1985 (MSG) - Your children, I cry for you, poor
mothers. Know that My Mother's heart is solaced only by the knowledge
that these children shall not be lost to Heaven. But your young
children have been disappearing from your homes. And where are
they, as you go to and fro, looking for your children, and My
Mother's tears fall upon you? Many shall be found dead, but others
shall never be found, for they are disposed of in a most despicable
way by a group known as the satanist............These groups,
My child and My children, are increasing, even on your island
of Long Island. There are at least twelve major covens, and they
are using human sacrifice. These bodies, My children, cannot be
found by the police, or other authorities who seek to help and
to solace the hearts of the family members of the lost child.............But
I tell you this now, why we have the abomination of murders of
children, for they are possessed by satan, those who will set
into motion laws, laws that are against God. Your country, My
child, the United States, shall feel war as never have they conceived
in their minds, that this could enter upon the glorious nation
of the United States and Canada. No, My children, you cannot escape
this. Your time is running out.
My child and My children, pray for those poor mothers who had
the missing children. There will be great punishments before this
major Chastisement, My child. There will be many punishments;
many tears shall flow from the mothers eyes, and their hearts
shall be opened for mercy, begging for mercy. ...........My child
and My children, the murders of the unborn will bring great Chastisement
upon the United States, Canada, and the nations of the world,
that are now contributing not only to the delinquency of your
children and the world's children, but are condoning murder and
euthanasia. Euthanasia, My child and My children, is murder!.........And
I must repeat again, My child, for the consolation of mothers.
They must watch over their children carefully, for there will
be thousands upon thousands that will vanish without a trace.
The satanist cults are turning into a armies, My child. They have
already tried to attack you through the powers that they retain
from satan. Do not be affrighted, but you must be more careful,
My child, whom you let into your house. For the souls of those
who knock upon your door are knowingly, or unknowingly to themselves,
sinful and on he road to destruction, and trying to take others
with them.
JULY 25, 1985 (MSG) - My child and My children, I have
cried great tears, My child, since I last saw you, for the fathers
and mothers, the poor mothers, they do not know what lies ahead
for their children, their children of all ages. Satan and his
legion of demons and devils are loosed now upon earth in full
force. They are doing very well, My children. ..................Oh,
My child, I am crying tears; My heart is torn when I think of
the children of earth. The parents, they look away as they are
in pursuit of riches and material things of the world. None of
this can be brought into Heaven to buy your salvation. No, My
children, My Son has often said that it will be easier for a camel
to go through a needle's eye than a rich man to enter Heaven.
AUGUST 21, 1985 (MSG) - My child and My children, there
is an evil plan now in your country, the United States of America,
and, also, the boughs are reaching like an evil tree into the
land of Canada. Children are disappearing from the earth. My child
and My children, I feel it necessary that I repeat to you again,
that you do not be bored at the repetition of the Message, for
it is urgent. Will your child be next? Many mother's hearts are
torn asunder, but they have found not the whereabouts of their
children; but many have found the possibility of the whereabouts
of their children, held as captives, for the whim and humor of
the satanist. They are increasing in your country, My child, and
all of the countries of the world. It is satan and his armies
now, knowing the time is short to battle with the children of
God. ..............The enemies of God are all about you. Russia
has planned these days, My child and My children. And how I have
begged for years of earth's time that Russia be consecrated to
My Immaculate Heart. When she is consecrated she will be converted,
My children, and then you shall see the world of joy again. Tears
shall be banished, and mothers shall not sorrow until they die
of grief for the loss of their children and their sons.
I, also, must give to you at this time another fact of your lives
upon earth. You as parents, mothers, fathers, must guard your
doors well and rule; take discipline in the lives of your children,
for they will bring much sorrow to your hearts as they grow; they
grow in a world that has been given to satan. When your child
opens his home, the door, he will face the agents of hell loosed
upon earth to reclaim his soul. Protect your children, My children;
be sure that as a parent you do not fall down in your duties to
teach your children, for many are now receiving schooling that
is based on atheism. Their books and manuals you do not read,
My children. You must as parents be a safeguard, a home of holiness
for your children, or they will perish; and your parent's tears
shall flow upon the world, crying, too late, too late.
SEPTEMBER 7, 1985 (MSG) - I have warned you all to protect
your children. I come to you as a Mother. So few can understand
My role throughout life on earth. I, too, know, My children, all
of your hardships, your sorrow, and the temptations from satan.
For I, too, was upon your earth, My children; this you have forgotten.
I am not unapproachable, as some think, because I was as one of
you, until the Eternal Father lifted Me up into Heaven. ..............Yes,
My children and My child, you cannot look back and say, 'Well,
this may be happening to my neighbors in Africa, in Europe, but
why should we care? For we can go on marrying, and singing, and
being materialistic in our modes.' But where is your soul, My
children and My child? I ask you this because if one parent refuses,
and has conscionable knowledge of his refusal being offensive
to his God, if one parent cast aside his child, no matter what
age that child is, and even into womanhood and manhood...That
parent has a responsibility to the children, his and her children,
to see that they learn fast of the knowledge of God and what is
coming upon them.
Since the world has given itself over to murders, murders of the
unborn, father against son, daughters against mothers, all manner
of carnage; also, being perpetrated in My House, My Church upon
earth. How long do you think I shall stand by and watch the destruction
of the young, because of parents who should not accept the role
or the name of parents, for they are destroying their children's
souls by their example. ...............Do not be sorrowful, My
child and My children; there will be times of great joy for all
of us. This will not be a permanent state upon earth; earth that
is covered with sin and defilement, children against their parents,
murders in every street, killing of the unborn, and much more;
much more that, My child, that I would wish you to know, but I
cannot, for the purity of heart, instruct you on the vile deeds
of the satanist.
SEPTEMBER 14, 1985 (MSG) - My child and My children, I
speak with you this evening to caution you, and not, to not fall
into despair because there is a conflict over My Brown Scapular.
...........You will know, My children, that there are always rules
and regulations for everything that man holds sacred. Therefore,
because so few priests in My Son's Church are willing to intercede
with the Scapular, and enthrone those who wish it, it has become
necessary to give a Scapular to every child upon earth; and he
or she of reasonable age shall go forth and find a kind-hearted
and true, holy priest to enroll them. It will take, My children,
much doing to find these priests; there are not many left...........The
Rosary must be recited daily, and twice a day, if possible. All
others We leave to you to say for added graces. In your world
of corruption and evil, My children, you cannot gather enough
graces. For those that you will not need when you come over the
veil to eternity will be given to those whom you love, or those
who you have fought to save, and, yet, you felt unsuccessful.
All the children of the world shall be counted in those who will
see the ultimate Chastisement. Many will die in the great flame
of the Ball of Redemption..................My child and My children,
you may ask your priests for knowledge of the stories coming from
the old, elderly fathers of My Son's Church, but can they tell
you the truth now that their seminaries have become polluted with
errors? Mothers cry to Me; I hear all of their prayers, prayers
to Heaven to save their children. And where can they find the
knowledge of the truth to teach them? That will depend now upon
an earnest mother and father, and discipline. Children are like
soft flowers that must be nourished so that their stalks will
grow; and their faces, the purity of their faces, shall rise toward
Heaven and be nourished with the fruits of life.
OCTOBER 5, 1985 (MSG) - My children, understand Us; We
do not come with messages to upset you or to make you afeared
of Us; that is not necessary. All you have to do is think, and
use your hearts, not just your head; I say, not just your head,
for the scientist and those who are in charge of the souls of
your children are implanting in these souls dark seeds of hate,
and envy, and the need for materialism. O My children, I could
repeat over and over again the sins that make it a world of destruction
for those who are trying to stay on the narrow road to Heaven,
while all obstacles are placed in his way. ..........My child,
I point for this reason; though, My child, it is a most difficult
message to bring to the world, you must not be afeared; but you
must shout it from the rooftops: Russia has the upper hand now
at this time in world peace or world destruction. You must understand,
the heart of the atheist is closed to mercy and goodness; a darkened
soul has shut out the light. And they seek nothing but the destruction
of any man, woman, or child who stands in their way, to assume
and gain through hatred and deception among families, and also,
the ruination of the lives of the children of all families.
My child, you must comfort those who cry and weep for their lost
children. There will be many other mothers who shall suffer the
horrible crimes against their children. All is coming to pass
because of the sins of the older generation. Those who should
know better are so enshrined in their own love of the material
that they cannot even visualize what they are doing to their children.
In order for your children to be saved, My parents, you must keep
a constant vigilance of prayer going throughout your home, and
those homes of your immediate families. One good example can save
a dozen, My children. ..........I hold all parents responsible
for the fall of their children's souls. Remember, My child and
My children, I have warned you often that once you open your door
and you go out into the world, you will enter into the kingdom
of satan. You ask, My child and My children, why is this allowed?
That you must trust to the goodness and in the goodness of the
heart of the Eternal Father. You cannot, as a human being, understand
the ways. But know this, My children, that no evil can come upon
mankind if he watches and waits. And We offer you three sacramentals
in you wait for the future. ...................I have but one
more discourse with you, My child; that is that you must go forward
and demand that the prayers be returned to the schools. In that
manner, We can approach the children, and return them to their
rightful place in the reign of God.
My child, I want you to do all you can to foster the return of
morality and morality to the medias; and, also, to those you love;
your neighbors, your children. And do not be affrighted or flee
from the sinner, for he, too, can be saved by your effort and
your prayers. As this child was born, so he must return; a simple
child, to the Eternal Father. If you remember, My child, the lessons
from Theresa; yes, St. Theresa, you will remember that it is a
simple way to Heaven; if you accept the Eternal Father into your
heart, you will always be His children of love. .................Veronica:
Oh, Our Lady is mentioning here, and I think I will repeat it,
that the children must be explained in a simple manner as possible,
to the children, the meaning of the Trinity, because, Our Lady
says, it is most misunderstood. However, if a parent will take
the time they can make it known to their children. They shall
not be taught the truth in the schools.
NOVEMBER 1, 1985 (MSG) - I know this makes you affrighted,
My child, that there is so little value for life, but did not
I tell you many years ago that if they started to murder the unborn,
they will murder the living, even the adults. They may murder
the children, but then they will also murder the elderly. .................My
child and My children, need I repeat to you all of the abominations
being committed upon the earth now? I can also repeat to you that
in some of these horrible, excruciatingly painful cults that are
growing up fast in your country and other countries about the
world, they have even gone so far as to dab now in cannibalism,
the eating of human flesh as a sacrifice to satan. That is why,
My children, so many cannot be found who are missing; mostly,
My children, young children. Mothers have cried; their hearts
torn with anguish when their children disappear from the streets.
Your police do not investigate fully. Sending out photographs
of the missing children, this is of little help when they fall
into the clutches of the satanists, for they do not remain about
long. Their bodies are often cremated on pyres to satan.
Now I speak to the parents. Parents of all young children, are
you earnestly making an effort to protect your children from a
world that has been given over to satan? What do you do when the
teachers in your schools teach your children sexual conduct, taking
from your young children the purity of heart and the innocence
of the youth? What do you do? Just let them take over? Parents,
you say it will not affect your child? Look what is happening
to the children of the world, young of age, three years old and
upward even younger than three. I cannot upon these holy grounds
use the words given in print for all of these abominations being
committed to the young child. But, My children, I tell you; it
is happening to those who do have good heart and a right mind.
They feel as though the world has gone, shall I use the word,
My child, 'crazy?' Yes, I will use the word 'crazy,' My child,
insanity, too. My Mother has always told you that sin is insanity.
MAY 17, 1986 (MSG) - I wish that all homes have a Bible
within their doors. I say within their doors, because these children
that they are raising must go out into a world that has been given
over to satan. The Bible must be ever before them, for it is their
true guide to redemption.
JUNE 18, 1986 (MSG) - O My children, if you knew what was
in store for you in the near future, and that means, My child
and My children, this year, you would understand why I feel, and
why I cry tears that fall upon you. If I could, I would as your
Mother, make all atonement for you, but it is the will of the
Eternal Father that you come forward now and stand up to protect
your own souls, and, also the souls of your children and your
families.
SEPTEMBER 27, 1986 (MSG) - And now, My child, it has not
been My policy to put down in strict perfect order those who are
going throughout the world as deceivers, but I warn you now to
beware and protect your children from the groups that are forming
that are false prophets and will take you from the true religions.
One must be named now and it is called the Jehovah Witnesses.
My children, they are not a church. They were not founded in the
time of My Son's placement upon earth. They were founded approximately
fifty-five years ago by a group of so-called learned seminarians,
not of the true Christian Faith, but seeking to rewrite the Bible
of God to suit their own human frailties and needs. It took a
great deal of courage to come away from the true Faith and establish
themselves, but this courage will be brought to naught. Except,
My children, that there are many now souls that come also from
the fold of the Eternal Father, the Roman Catholics, that are
being taken in by this group of false prophets.
My child, Veronica, it does Our hearts well, and We feel very
comforted to know that has not been lost upon earth. We have watched
now the teachings of the children in most of the houses upon earth
of My Son, and I must say: I shed tears of pity for the parents,
for it is best now if the parents look well into the teaching
of their children in the schools, the Catholic schools of the
world. Because they will find that the theologians have crept
in now with modernism and humanism. And your children must be
protected. ...................A foul situation has come about
in the schools, both public and private. They are now teaching
sex education, My chidden. And this is a debauchery of your young
souls. Parents, are you so blind that you do not investigate,
or ask your children what has happened in their classes today
at school? Show you no interest as you go about the world gathering
materialism, and seeking to break your home apart by husband and
wife going in both directions; neither do they work together to
hold the home together, but they work apart, many leaving the
children astray by not having counsel over them.
JUNE 6, 1987 (MSG) - My child, I know much of this discourse
distresses your heart, but you can imagine well, and I know you
do, My child, Veronica, the sorrow My Mother feels now that sex
education has entered upon the school system. We say unto you,
and I say to you, as your God, My children: Mothers and fathers
of the world, you will not give over your children to be taught
by demons! Satan has many loosed upon earth now. They enter into
the bodies of any man, woman or child who has fallen out of grace;
and they enter into the bodies of those who teach your children
error. ...............It is the place and the will of the Eternal
Father that the home shall be the safeguard for the children's
souls, the mother, the father. But what can We expect, My children,
when even the state of marriage, the sacrament of Marriage, is
being destroyed slowly? We know all that is going on upon earth,
living together without union under God. No, My children, that
shall also be destroyed in time; if not by sickness and death
of the body, it will also be by sickness and death of the soul.
My child, there is also one thing I wish to discuss with you for
the world, for all of the world's children to know, how Heaven
feels about their diabolical search for life in a test tube. Yes,
My child, I know this shocks you, but you are fully aware of what
is going on. Your news medias seem to enjoy putting these evils
before your eyes and your ears and your readings. Yes, We frown
upon surrogate mothers. We shall not tolerate the making of children
from one to the other.............These children are not conceived
by the Holy Ghost, the spirit within them at the moment of conception,
because their conception is from a test tube, and an instrument
of so-called doctor upon earth. He is a doctor, not of divinity
but of sin. ...........Doctors now are profaning their profession;
those who have given themselves over to destroying human life
in abortions. Doctors also pretend, or hope to seek far above
the Eternal Father. Just as the angels did many years ago. they
sought to out-shine the Eternal Father, and they were cast forever
out of Heaven. But they took many with them.................Therefore,
My children, I must tell you this, there will be a major war between
the right and the wrong side, the left and the right, over this
issue. We will not have test tube babies, for they are not born
with a soul. They can only, then, be called a 'thing,' a 'creature'
unknown. Is this what you want, My children? Is this what you
want of these children you bear for another? To give them as though
your were machines, manufacturing them for another?
JUNE 18, 1987 (MSG) - Now, My child, I have one more thing
to tell you. There has been much publicity afoot in your country
and the world about the existence of satanic cults. I must tell
you they do exist. They worship satan, and they are the opposite
of all Christianity. They will do the opposite of what is asked
in the Bible. Therefore, they kill with no remorse. They steal
your children and brutalize them. ................How can they
do this, My child, you ask Me? How can they be so hard, so cruel,
so merciless? Well, My child, the enemies of your country and
the world have done their work good. They are using an infiltration
with drugs. Your children are being educated for the use of these
drugs. ..........My children, I do not come this evening to be
a bearer of ill tidings, but I must caution you because each day
the carnage grows worse. If it continues, My children, you will
see your children disappearing from the streets again. .............There
is now a plan in the national and international seat of satan....It
is a group, My child, that is united with other groups throughout
the world. They have one plan in mind, to bring about the fall
of all nations and the introduction of communism to all nations,
by destroying the young with drugs and all manners of debasity.
All the holiness of Marriage has been cast aside. We see now children
growing up into sin, as they go forth into life unprepared by
their parents. ..........My child and My children, We ask all
of you, prayer, atonement and sacrifice. Is this too much to ask
for the salvation of your soul, and of all the souls in your family?...............I
say families must be strong in this age of sorrow, this age of
darkness. It is the family, within the family, that the children
must be taught. Do not depend upon your schools, for they have
been infiltrated with evil. Do not depend upon your neighbors,
for they are often caught up in the world of satan.
OCTOBER 2, 1987 (MSG) - My child and My children, can you
not understand what I am trying to tell you as your Mother; you
must guard your children. Warn them against strangers. Don't be
taken up with things of the world, so that your children must
go and find their pleasures elsewhere; for they will fall into
the hands of the walking demons. They prowl the highways. They
go through the streets of the cities, looking for the young and
the gullible, and those who have no homes. Your country, the United
States, has been graced with much prosperity, My children. Therefore,
you must take it upon yourselves to guard your children by having
proper education for them, and also homes for those without a
proper home. There is much money in your country and Canada that
can be usefully used for the salvation of these children. ..........My
child and My children, listen to Me carefully. Guard your children
and those in your family with your sacramentals; the Rosary, if
you have no other sacramental; until you receive a brown scapular
and a crucifix, place a Rosary about your children's necks. They
must be guarded in these dire times. How urgent is it? All you
have to do, My children, is hear the daily news and you know of
the murders of the young and innocent that are being perpetrated
by the agents of satan.
We know what is right under your God. The Eternal Father has given
you the way to Heaven. It is not an easy road, it is a narrow
road, long and narrow for many. Others have reached it early through
the grace of their God. I know the removal of children from the
earth at early ages brings great sorrow to a parent's heart; however,
when they are removed, they go into Heaven. ........My child,
I do not wish to burden you any longer with the miseries upon
earth. I wish to talk only a while, a little bit, about the children
of earth, the young children. The parents must be very careful,
My children, who you send your children to be taught from. Much
evil is being developed in the schools in the name of sexuality.
Why cannot We have Our children pure of thought and mind? How
can We, My children, when the teachers there are being taught
to bring in sex education to your children? This belongs not in
the schools, but in the homes. This is an obligation of the parents.
It will only lead to much greater disaster by having this sex
education in the school system.
JUNE 18, 1988 (MSG) - Also, they are also lacking in interest
in many places. Children are disappearing by the thousands, and
where do they go? They go straight to the pits of hell, as they
become pawns in the hands of the satanists.............Do not
accept strangers into your homes at this time, for the souls who
knock upon your doors will be found to be evil, and they can also
destroy the souls of the young.
OCTOBER 1, 1988 (MSG) - We have other things to discuss,
My child, before the evening is over. I want the world to know
now that We will no longer tolerate the murders of the unborn.
The Eternal Father finds that children He had great plans for
to bring the true Faith to the world and to save His Son's Church,
they have been murdered in the womb. Satan is the father of all
liars, and many reasons are given for abortion. And even now in
Our convents, they are going about consoling women who are about
to have abortions; whereas they do not tell them the truth that
they are murderers and they are mothers who will murder their
own children. ............The Eternal Father set up women not
to be priests and not to be murderers, but to be with the head
of the household a guiding light for their children. Each child
to the Eternal Father is a pure blessing upon mankind, but all
this has been lost in the name of modernism. Immodesty reigns
in your country. There are many reasons why the Eternal Father
feels that it is now time to do something about all of these abnormalities.
..............You, My child Veronica, will continue to gain strength,
and you will be here at the next Vigil, because at that time you
are going to have many fleeing from their homes*. The Eternal
Father feels that it is only in this way that He can save the
souls of the children and the unborn. ...........(October 6, 1988)
Our Lady appeared to Veronica in her home on Monday, October 24,
1988, and informed her that the prophecy in the October 1, 1988
message concerning people fleeing their homes referred to Algeria.
In fact, the "New York Times" reported in an article
dated October 7, 1988 that four days of demonstrations and rioting
by youths in the streets of Algiers had resulted in the deaths
of dozens of people with more than 900 wounded. Days later the
toll rose to anywhere between 200 and 500 dead.
OCTOBER 6, 1988 (MSG) - Mothers must now take full precedence
for their children. In other words, My child, they must be the
teachers now, for those who were teachers have given themselves
over now to all forms of Modernism, and pacifying those that are
evil in their teachings. They do not stand on their two feet solidly
before their bishops, who are going wrong in the teaching of their
children. It will be up to the parents at this time to go forward
and be a true parent in the eyes of God by teaching their children
at home. ............(The Act of Contrition: Jesus says will be
cast from the books) You see, My child, that also will be cast
from the books this coming year. The children are being taught
unity, but world unity. The world is striving and fast heading
for a one-world religion, and also a one-world government. But
this will not be a godly government; it will one of communistic
nature. .............Remember, My children, a constant vigilance
of prayer. Use no excuses to relieve your family of this obligation
to the Eternal Father. And remember again, My children, the two
prayers that makes the heart rise to Heaven. Teach your children,
for they will not be taught any longer in the schools.
Do not be affrighted, My child, I realize that this has given
you a feeling of terror, for the AIDS plague has hit many; all
the known and unknown, and children as well. I would suggest,
My children, that you guard yourselves well against this plague.
If you must have a form of operation requiring transfusions, I
would suggest that you have a member of your family donate this
blood; for the other has been grossly, I say grossly, contaminated
and will cause many deaths. ......My child and My children, listen
to this well; guard your children. Do not let them be influenced
by their teachers today, for modernism has set in, and also immodesty.
there are many teachers whose example are poor to the children;
therefore, it is now the duty of each parent to guard their children's
souls. Otherwise, the day will come when they will shed great
tears of sorrow, not knowing in what realm their children lie,
now that they have passed over the veil.
MARCH 18, 1989 (MSG) - Now, My children, I speak to the
mothers of the world. You must make a firm effort to be a righteous
mother and a godly mother, following the rules from Heaven. For
eventually every one of you will come over the veil, and you must
make an accounting for your actions upon earth. We find that you
are all lacking at this time, because as parents, you have been
caught up in the wheel of misfortune for your children. They are
being ignored, and also, their religious upbringing is nil. ..............My
parents of the world, I say unto you, as your God. This will not
be tolerated much longer. For if you parents will not raise your
children in the light, you will raise them in darkness, and they
will eventually rise up and even kill you. There are many satanic
institutions throughout the world now that are waiting for your
children. Are you going to allow them to fall into their hands
because you are too busy elsewhere to watch your children? Are
you turning them over to the satanic tube, the television? Yes,
My children, they are learning to kill by the television. They
are learning disrespect for the parents. They laugh at you when
you are not watching. That, My children of the world, parents,
your children are to be lost.
Veronica: Now I see a picture forming in the sky. It shows a terrible
scene on a television. It shows a young child butchering a cat.
The child watching this goes to the kitchen, takes out a large
bread knife, and, oh, my God! He's plunging it into the back of
his mother! Now the scene is becoming very dark; I don't see anything
else. It's ghastly!...............That, My child, is what is happening
now throughout the world. The children are taken over by satan
through this instrument of satan. Much good could be gained if
many will monitor their television sets, for their children's
minds are being seduced by satan. I repeat again: Your own children
will rise up against you and destroy your household. Murders are
abounding.
JUNE 18, 1989 (MSG) - My child and My children of the world,
I want you to know this: For the ;perseverance in the fight ahead
to stop the satanists in their quest to take your children from
your homes, I ask all parents at this time to be a steady guardian
of their children and not to become obsessed with the things of
this world, the pleasures and the monetary gain. ...............I
wish that all parents who hear My voice tonight to be alerted
to the fact that there are over 10,000, now cults in the United
States and Canada alone. Many children have been slain by them
in sacrifice to satan. Is this what you want, My children? Parents,
keep a close watch on your children. Be sure that they do not
leave your home without your knowing where they are going, for
many will not return. ..................This adulation of
satanism shall not be prevalent when the Eternal Father gives
Us the means to reach all humanity with this plea from Heaven
to save your children from the satanists.
JUNE 18, 1990 (MSG) - You have to understand, the Eternal
Father is not a punishing God. However, He is most interested
in the children, and it appears now that the sins of the parents
are being placed upon the shoulders of the children. And O My
children, if I could only show you the list that the Eternal Father
has for Him to go through the world and bring these souls back.
The sins of the parents shall be visited upon the children.................My
child and My children, I have very little to say that could solace
Me for the evil I see prevalent upon the earth. Your generation
have become perverse and indoctrinated by satan, until the cults
of satan now are well stacked in your country. Your children will
be the victims. ...............Yes, My child and My children,
I know it is difficult to you to understand, without having an
actual meeting with these satanists, to see how vile they are,
how they desecrate every thing, and how they torment the souls
of the children and those they have in their grasp. ..............Protect
your children! All the mothers and fathers of the world, protect
your children, or they will disappear from your homes forever.
Even human sacrifice is taking place at this very hour that I
am here with you. How can We do anything but beg with you to listen
now, before it is too late!
OCTOBER 2, 1990 (MSG) - I, your Mother, and Protectress
of the world's children do beg you now to repent of your sins
against the teachings of the eternal Father, sins of the flesh
and the intellect. ...............A great war will erupt suddenly;
such as has not been seen from the beginning of creation. Countries
shall disappear in moments from the face of the earth. Will you
not listen to Me before it is too late? You all do not have much
time left. ............I come to you as a Protectress of Peace.
Unless you repent of your abortions, the murders of the unborn,
and return to lives of prayer and contemplation of the mysteries
of the Eternal Father, given by writings, the Bible, the Book
of life and love, I cannot save you from the conflagration that
lies ahead.
JUNE 18, 1991 (MSG) - Parents, I ask you now to get rid
of the infernal machines in your homes! I warned you through many
earth years that this will be a point of destruction for your
children. If you are least, I ask at least, which is the least
you can do, is to monitor what your children are seeing. Satan
has created the infernal tube. Heaven did not deem it to be in
the homes of the just. ............Guard your children, mothers
of the world, guard them against the forces that are loosed upon
earth. It is truly the final battle raging with Lucifer. ........St.
Theresa: Parents must guard their children, even from their teachers.
Many are now direct agents of hell, though they walk in human
bodies. Protect your children with their sacramentals. Teach them!...............Please,
I ask you mothers monitor your children's lives. Do not be an
escapist, running from home and finding pleasures of the world.
Bring a prayer life back to your children before it is too late.
You will be held accountable for the fall of the souls of the
children. Therefore, I ask parents throughout the world, with
love, and good leadership in the household, your children will
not fall as prey to satan.
JUNE 18, 1992 (MSG) - Mothers and fathers, how often have
I counseled you to protect your children in these days. You will
find that many of those that you entrust to teach your children
are bringing them into a world of unrealistic atheism. Already,
My child, it saddens My heart to know that you are not, as a nation,
allowed any longer to pray in your schools. .............And as
for your children, I say this as your God: Every parent that does
not take the responsibility of teaching and raising his children,
and giving them to others who are possessed by these demons that
are loosed now upon your earth, I say possessed, and that is only
a kind word. I could discourse with you much farther, but I'm
afraid, My child, your heart would not be able to accept this.
..........However, I say at this time that all parents will be
held responsible for the fall of their children's souls. Do not
expect them to leave your homes and to be taught in light and
truth, for the demons are raging now all about you. All hell is
opened wide now, and you know that means that the onslaught is
at hand. ..............Therefore, We ask all parents to keep a
steady hand on their children. Bar them from all the insensitive
acts being committed on the diabolical tube of satan, your television.
I ask if you cannot monitor your set, to remove it immediately
from your home, for your children will even resort to murder if
they continue to watch the programming.
OCTOBER 6, 1992 (MSG) - My child and My children, your
children are leading lives without direction or knowledge of eternal
life in Heaven. Sin has become a way of life in your country and
many countries of the world, little children led astray by their
elders. ...............And My children of the earth and the once-beautiful
United States of America, do not sell your souls to get to the
head! Money has been called the root of all evil. Already the
young are being tarnished, their souls corrupted by their elders.
JUNE 18, 1993 (MSG) - My child and My children, I have
often admonished you to guard your children in this world of darkness.
You are responsible for your children's souls. As such, if you
neglect them in this lifetime you cannot enter the Kingdom of
Heaven, but could spend an eternity hell or a long season in the
other place of banishment, purgatory.
MANKIND: PARENTS
V O L
U M E I
JULY 15, 1970 - Mothers, watch....and guard your children....with
prayer, for they are the victims of evil. (vol I page 11)
AUGUST 5, 1970 - Man has lost his purity. All parents must
guard their children's souls. Be firm with your children. The
fashions grieve all Heaven. (vol I page 12)
AUGUST 21, 1970 - Father against son, son against father,
daughter against mother! Woe to the man who refused to repent!
The brightest star in Heaven will be dimmed on that day! Mothers,
stand together to outwit the enemy that seeks to ravage your children!
(vol I page 13)
SEPTEMBER 28, 1970 - Many mothers hearts will be saddened.
Luciel takes the words from their hearts. We cast them down, but
they (devils) work their vengeance. Save your children. Guard
them constantly. They are in grave danger, I bring you mothers
together, for only you can save your children, for only you care.
(vol I page 14)
NOVEMBER 1, 1970 - I cannot admonish you enough to heed
the signs, I give you the Hourglass. The sand is going down! Pray!
Pray! My children, for your priests and all those of high positions
in My Son's Holy Church, for the greatest attacks from satan will
come to them! Turn not away from them, but pray, and show the
example of a Living Christ! This example must be brought to the
children by their parents. (vol page 16)
NOVEMBER 21, 1970 - Mothers clean out your daughters' closets!
Better you burn their clothes than to have their souls forever
burning in Hell! How sad to find the children who can no longer
recognize sin! (vol I page 17)
NOVEMBER 21, 1970 - Sin has now become a way of life in
your Country! Mothers, what will happen to your children outside
your home? Protect your children for there is no salvation outside
your home, the anchor of a good home dedicated to Christ the King!
(vol I page 17)
DECEMBER 7, 1970 - Woe to those parents in their lethargy
who refuse to avert the dark path, refuse to see the children
on the path to destruction! Like sheep they follow the leader
of evil! Those who know better, are pushing these souls, closer
to hell! They are using 'leadership' to destroy souls!(vol I page
18)
DECEMBER 24, 1970 - My poor children, you desire so much
in material things and so little in the spiritual! We look down
upon so many homes that are becoming the reason for the destruction
of children's souls. The memory of the Truth of My Son's existence
must be kept in the homes. (vol I page 18)
DECEMBER 26, 1970 - My child, My heart is saddened. I look
into homes and see the darkness within, for the children no longer
feel love or repent for their parents and others. It is already
a way of life. The blackest of sins has entered the homes. Mothers
how dare you fall down in your duty as parents! Take your children
to be slaughtered! How dare you fall down in your duty as a parent,
and when you fall in your duty as a parent you will remain in
hell forever! (vol I page 19)
FEBRUARY 1, 1971 - You will not receive a kind ear from the clergy, for man can be wise but stupid. Man has grown soft in the luxuries of his worldly life. Man no longer seeks the Revelation in the Bible. I want you, My child, to repeat the words of My Son, given to your young son in his innocence of heart. I repeat the words of Jesus: My heart is sobbing. My hands are bleeding. I long to see My creation and be filled with Joy! The monuments, your statues, they MUST be kept in your homes, for all who keep them in their homes will be saved. The broken cross, the sign of the man of perdition, the sign of the anti-Christ, so-called peace symbol, all who wear this ARE DOOMED! The Rosary is broken, people do not take this seriously, My children, how many signs
must be given to you? The man of perdition has spread his folly
wide! The Light has not passed through the Papal Village. He has
kept it in darkness.
Mothers, I must warn you! Be sure that your children are well
guarded, for this man of perdition, when he cannot reach you,
will try to hurt you through your children. Guard them carefully,
be sure that they have the cross about their necks. Do not let
these innocent souls be fooled by the ways of satan. Do not let
them bring into your homes this evil broken cross, or it will
doom your household! It is the mark of the man of perdition! He
will remain an extra week, My child, your trials are not over.
..............Satan has opened the abyss many of his henchmen
are among you, for every knock on your door, evil knocks on your
door. Guard your homes well, let not those enter, if you value
the salvation of your souls. Guard your children well! Teach them
the laws of God. Live a life with Christ and you will be saved.
Pray for those who reap what they have sown! (vol I page 22)
FEBRUARY 11, 1971 - I admonish you again! Parents, remove
that diabolical sign of satan from your children's throats, for
it will strangle their souls! This mark of the anti-Christ, the
cross that is broken, used as a disguise; the peace symbol. Destroy
them before they destroy your children! Place the Cross upon their
necks for, that will be all that will save them! Do not fall down
in your job as a parent, for you will also be held responsible
for the condition of your children's souls when they are brought
to Us. .........Remember, as ye sow, so shall ye reap! Plant good
seed now, while there is still time! (vol I page 24)
APRIL 1, 1972 - Keep your monuments (statues, etc.) in
your homes. Pray that the devil remain (away) from your home,
and you will be saved. Your country will be cleansed by trial,
and should this not bring you back, you will be led to your own
baptism of fire! I beg of you now, atonement and sacrifice. I
have little time to wander further throughout earth now. I have
come here; an oasis in a barren land, to this seat of evil, Babylon.
But, My children, I know within this city of evil there are many
who can rise above it and reach out and save their brothers!
(vol I page 49)
MAY 19, 1971 - Confusion! Confusion. It is satan's method.
Fear and confusion. You must recognize the face of evil, you must
not be led as sheep to the slaughter! We gave you all an inborn
conscience. These evils must be stopped because of the children.
The heavy burden will be upon the parents. They must keep the
Faith in their hearts. It will not be an easy task, your only
refuge will be your home. You will have to bar your door against
evil. Yes, you can be deluded and misled and not see the evil
about you! It could be, My child, like mass hypnotism! Satan has
gained much ground throughout your earth. The numbers of conquests
increase every day and not enough forces to stop them. We place
a heavy burden upon you who have the heart and the faith. You
must save your brothers and sisters from this evil! (vol I page
28)
JULY 15, 1971 - The children are truly victims of their
elders. We hold all parents responsible for the fall of their
children's souls. (vol I page 30)
JULY 25, 1971 - The children are the victims of their elders.
All parents will be held responsible for the fall of their children's
souls. You parents must well remember that satan seeks to claim
the souls of all those destined for Our Kingdom but you parents
must now struggle to save them from the reach of satan for you
did not prepare yourselves when you were warned of the dangers
that were lying ahead of you. Yes you turned a deaf ear. I had
warned you for many years you deafened your ears and hardened
your hearts. ................Oh, you blind, foolish parents who
do not recognize the products of your laxity!! The blow, it will
be visited upon you, for as you sow so shall you reap. Yes, you
parents are filling the bodies and minds with luxuries, but you
have chosen to starve the souls of your children. Your children
are being led farther into the darkness. We do not see the light
ahead for them. Oh, mournful sight, to see the destruction that
is imminent upon you. Oh, mournful heart for you who do not listen.
When this comes upon you, you will still not believe what you
see with your eyes. Oh, My children, will you be counted among
the few or will you be lost forever to Us? (vol I page 31)
AUGUST 5, 1971 - You must bring the angels into your homes.
Every child has been given a guardian. Have you made your children
aware of this fact? Yes, I could name the angels, guardian of
every one this evening but there are many things that We would
prefer to keep sacred rather than to expose them to unworthy souls.
We will not give graces to be cast off in mockery. Therefore you
parents will carry the greatest part of the load for you parents
will be responsible for your children's souls......................I
have brought you the plan for your salvation. It will now be your
decision. You must eliminate the evil one in your schools, your
churches, your houses and your entire way of life which has turned
to satan. You must bring your children out of the darkness, that
their elders have cast them into. It will be the duty of all parents
to bring the truth to their children. It will not be easy. Satan
has it well planned that it will not be easy. You will have to
fight the world and society but how long will you be living in
this society? Do you think of who will be ahead of you? Have you
forgotten the Kingdom? Have you given your bodies and your souls
for the pleasures of this world which will soon be ended for you?
(vol I page 32)
AUGUST 21, 1971 - We will not hold all children responsible
for their acts against God. We will hold all the parents responsible
for the destruction of their children's souls! When a soul falls,
it is only because there are too few prayers offered for them,
too few who cared enough. There will be much suffering, so many
martyrs in the conflagration ahead, but remember, My children,
Life will go on for there is life forever for those who carry
the Light; you just pass over, My children, into the Kingdom.
(vol I page 33)
SEPTEMBER 7, 1971 - My Heart bleeds for what I look upon!
These poor children, their souls and bodies destroyed by the enemy
that you have allowed to enter into your country. These children
suffer at the hands of their elders. Poison has been placed into
their bodies to destroy them! The destruction of the bodies is
as nothing for when this destruction comes into the soul, then,
My children, the tears may fall for the anguish of knowing the
loss for all eternity. There is no love left in the hearts of
your children. They are being conditioned to hate! To destroy!
All parents must look now, into the days that lie before you.
You will see how your children will turn upon you. Yes, you will
receive and reap the products of your laxity. Your city is as
a cesspool! All the evils come as a nucleus here and fan out.
When the hand comes upon you, you will be leveled for your licentiousness,
your greed, you immorality! The children must be saved for they
are the innocent victims of their elders! Parents who have grown
lax as they seek the pleasures of the world before, the spiritual
welfare of their children, their children's souls! (You will flee
from all false pastors! You will not be led into false obedience,
for in this way you will be led as sheep to the slaughter). (vol
I page 34)
You parents must keep the faith in your children! The conditions
in your country, the conditions in the world, are far worse than
in the time of Noah and Sodom! (vol I page 35)
SEPTEMBER 28, 1971 - All parents must rescue their children
from the evils of error! We advocate the instructions of your
children in the Faith. We do not want their teachers to be the
adversary's helpers, the followers of the agents of hell who do
not recognize the truth. You must know this truth of the evil
that is about you, and must fight this evil with prayer and sacrifice
of your worldly desires! (vol I page 36)
NOVEMBER 1, 1971 - Prayer, sacrifice, atonement. We ask
little of you. All can be summed up in one word: Love. All parents
will guard their children's souls. All parents will be held responsible
for their children's souls. Pray for the Light that you may not
be led into the darkness. I have stressed the plan for your salvation
many times. You will act upon it now or fail! (vol I page 38)
NOVEMBER 20, 1971 - Every parent, every leader, every kingdom
and provincial will make an account to his God! Those of well
spirit, fear not, but yea, I say to you, the destruction of a
soul has far more dire consequences than any body destruction
suffered on your earth! Many graces will be given to you on this
hallowed ground of My Shrine. (vol I page 39)
DECEMBER 31, 1971 - My children, your homes must be a fortress.
Your homes must be a stronghold of Godly unification. We look
sadly upon much division in the families. Mother against daughter,
father against son, all the maturing plan of the evil one. To
divide is to conquer; united you will stand as a family. Recognize
the evil in your land that is reaching into every family. Parents
will be held responsible for the guarding of the children's souls.
Pray for the Light to come to all your members. Yes, pray for
your children who are the true victims of the web of evil that
enshrouds the whole earth now. The example given in many homes
is foul! We have asked you to keep the statues to be a focal point
for the mirror of the soul. The impression upon young minds of
Our true existence, that many choose to call legends! Keep the
pictures, the sacramentals in your homes. Pray together as a loving
family. Prepare the young souls well, for as they go without the
family door, it will stand them well in the onslaughts of satan,
so evident in excess about them; this darkness that covers the
world. Be you not ignorant of the fact that there are loosed on
your earth inhabitants of the abyss, demons of the latter days
struggle, who will gather as agents of hell, bent on soul destruction
and searching up new inhabitants for the kingdom of Lucifer. Your
children of tender years are led very easily, the world is now
a giant web! I would spare you, My children, from this terrible
fact, but you must be alerted to these agents. Do not be misled
also by those who parade as angels of Light, but are truly ravenous
wolves carrying the venom of satan. Do not be conditioned to accept
evil. Your first allegiance is to your God.
Confusion, confusion! All about Us We see confusion and the conditioning
of errors. Family prayer must be instituted in the home. Without
prayer you will walk the road of error! Many prayers of reparation
are needed for Our Vicar. There is, My child, a plan to eliminate
him. It is being developed to remove him from Our House for one
who is known as anti-Christ, to reign, yes, this black leader
is not black of color, but of heart. He will bring much evil into
My Son's House. (vol I page 41)
MARCH 24, 1972 - Oh, My children, how I have beseeched
the Father for the grace that the Eternal permit you to see what
will lie ahead. Repent now, while there is time! You cannot escape
the fact that there is around you an unseen world, the armies
are heavy of satan! In this war, We will be victorious in the
final outcome, but many tears will be shed before that day! Many
mother's hearts will be torn in sorrow. Many will leave your earth
unprepared! Pray that this darkness will not enter upon your house!
We place the greatest responsibility upon parents at this time;
to guard and armor their children's souls, from the evil which
will increase! Oh, My children, if only you could look into the
few days in earthly years and see what is to come upon you! You
will prepare yourself well for this day! (vol I page 44,45)
MARCH 25, 1972 - Be knowledgeable, My children, and understand
that he (satan) will not come to you as himself; he can possess
the body of any unclean soul, be it man, woman, or child! I repeat
to you, now, that all parents will be held responsible for the
fall of their children's souls! Give them a good foundation and
when they are subject to the storms of evil they will not crumble
under the onslaught (or surrender). ...........Permissiveness,
My children, is destroying you. Laxity of discipline and parents
involving themselves in excessive worldly pursuits. What has become
of the dedication? What has become of the laws given to you by
Our prophets? (vol I page 45)
Nakedness! Abomination! Aberrations! have become a way of life!
Nakedness, have you no shame! To expose your body and cause another
to also fall! You are double sinning! Mothers, in your permissive
attitude you condone your daughter to sin! Have you no protective
instinct for your child? Why do your subject her to the ravages
of satanic agents? ..........You have broken the laws of your
God! We see despicable women who desecrate their homes! What has
your love of the flesh, your sins of the flesh, gained you, but
hell! The laws of your God were given you for a reason. What example
do you give your children? Do not call yourself 'mother', call
them harlots of the world! You are as dung in the streets! (vol
I page 46)
APRIL 10, 1972 - Your young people are being seduced! We
place the greatest responsibility for their falling on the parents
and the teachers. (vol I page 50)
Are your children visiting temples of satan? Parents have become
pleasure seeking, filling their stomachs, pampering the body,
to what avail? Unless you become disciplined, seeking only the
way of God, you will be destroyed, physically and spiritually!
(vol I page 51)
MAY 10, 1972 - There are parents who are not practicing
true discipline with their children. Permissive attitudes, while
parents grow lax; parents who do not watch the forms of entertainment
of their children; many young souls are losing their purity, learning
to accept sin as a way of life. Woe to these parents! What are
you doing? Have you tried to eliminate this evil from your world
from your lives? Do you not know that this is all the evil plan
to destroy you and your children? What are you doing to change
this? You look toward the wrong road when you accept and close
your eyes, and deny the dangers to your soul. Only We can save
you, the evil in man is great, only We can save you! (vol I page
51)
MAY 30, 1972 - Parents, how dare you allow your daughters
to be looked upon with lustful eyes! Have you no shame? What is
your example? Are you pagans? .........Guard your children's souls.
Your country and peoples have taken up with pagan practices. Star
gazing and fortune telling has a rock heart. Only your God controls
your destiny. He is not a feelingless being, but a living Entity!
(vol I page 52)
JUNE 8, 1972 - Man has left the road to Heaven. He has
made his way from the straight path onto the dark one. The responsibility
for the fall of souls will be balanced heavily upon those responsible
for the destruction of young souls. Parents, why do you go down
the road of satan? Has My Son suffered in vain? (vol I page 53)
Mothers, why are you permissive with your children? Do you not
recognize the plan of satan? Do you wish lustful eyes cast upon
the innocence of your young child? Do not lead your child into
danger! I have watched with torn heart the parent who leads her
daughter to the butchers! How dare you! Do you think you will
go unpunished? No! Acts of violence, impurity of heart, murders
without conscience, offenses of every nature to your God, are
being committed in your country! Your city is a cesspool of sin!
Many cities in your country have become dark with sin! Will you
continue to seek the way in darkness? Understand, My children,
that you are in a hard battle. The abyss is open and when you
are in Our Light the forces of evil are doubled against you. Therefore,
be watchful! (vol I page 53,54)
JULY 15, 1972 - Each family that wishes to be saved, must
now retire as a family from the world that has now been given
to satan. Guard the souls of the ones you love. Satan sends his
agents among you with cunning. You must always watch. Many parents
are leading their children on the road to damnation by their example,
by their permissiveness and by their laxity. What has happened
to the shame among you? Pagans! (vol I page 56)
AUGUST 5, 1972 - Veronica: Our Lady pointed to a map over
the waters: Chinese people, black people, floods, plague. Our
Lady said: This is in small measure what is in store for your
country. Many children will be taken from your country. It is
the only recourse to save them from a bad parenthood, a misguiding
society; from a land that has turned its back on its God! (vol
I page 59)
SEPTEMBER 7, 1972 - I admonish all parents to prepare their
children's souls now for the Chastisement which is not long in
coming. Better that all parents make plans for this, for they
will shed many tears of regret if they do not! (vol I page 63)
MARCH 18, 1973 - I wish that all fathers of households
stand forth and practice their role. They will use the rod and
not permit their children to go astray. Firmness is needed in
your world that is filled with laxity, permissiveness and degradation...........The
greatest detrimental factor in the family and home is the desire
for the material. Better that you live in the gardens and fields
with the nourishment of manna from Heaven, than to be filled with
the abominations of the world. ........Man has lost his way. Man
has set himself from the road to the Kingdom. He has not much
time to return to the road. He will gather his family about him
and save those he loves, and in the charity of his heart seek
to set an example for his neighbor. (vol I page 87)
MAY 10, 1973 - The more, My children, you choose to go
and live among men, the less you will feel yourself in union with
the Father. You must retire within yourself. Gather your families
about you in prayer. .........Your children must be protected
against the world, your world of evil. Better that they starve
their bodies than to starve their souls. The seeking of worldly
gain has sent many souls into hell. The example being shown in
many homes is abominable. Many parents will pay a high price in
the loss of the Kingdom for their lack of discipline and proper
direction of the souls entrusted to them. (vol I page 101)
JUNE 16, 1973 - All who remain in the light will have no
fear in the days ahead. They will find solace and refuge in My
Son's Sacred Heart. Bring My Son into your homes and monuments
and daily remembrance. You will find this a great rock in a world
that will go into darkness. Your homes must become a fortress
in the battle ahead. ........Instruct your children well in the
salvation of their souls. Know that when they leave beyond the
doors of your home, they will be subject to satan. Teach them,
My children, parents, the value of prayer. Prayer must be returned
to you homes. Your example must be one of purity. Your example
must be one of fortitude. And most of all, My children, remember:
You must show and practice love for the Father. (vol I page 110)
JULY 25, 1973 - St. Anne: Oh, how sad to look upon the homes of earth! Whatever has become of motherhood? Bad example, such poor example I see in many homes. You must return to the simple life. The love of riches will destroy your souls. ........Involvement of the parents in worldly pursuits and living take them farther from the graces of Heaven. The greatest offenses to the Father is the lack of discipline and true direction of many parents of earth today, My children. ......
You still have time to make restitution and atonement, and to
save your children. You must bring them back to the Sacraments.
You must be an example of modesty and true faith to them. Children
will learn much by your example. (vol I page 117)
Where is the place of the man and father? Where has he gone from
the homes? Why has woman sought to take his place? Satan has created
this delusion. The place for woman is in the home and the rearmament
of the child. The man will be the breadwinner and safeguard his
home. .....Women, mothers of the world, why do you expose your
bodies? Why do you create lust in the eyes of others, and in their
hearts? What example are you as mothers? Animals! Many homes
now are infested with human animals!......Your homes will be homes
of prayer and good example. You may have to be an object of scorn
and derision among your neighbors, but O my children, if they
knew what awaits them, they would come and join you on their knees.
(vol I page 118)
OCTOBER 6, 1973 - I ask you, My children, to retire from
your world which has been given to satan. Keep pure and holy thoughts
in your minds and hearts. Set an example of godliness for your
children, for many shall be gathered in the days ahead. Many will
be taken unprepared to enter the Kingdom. (vol I page 139)
DECEMBER 24, 1973 - I dispense upon all many graces; graces
in abundance, graces for the asking. Come to Me, My children,
all who are burdened with sorrows, mothers forsaken by their children.
There is great discord in family life. I have given you the sacramentals,
and the plan to restore peace within your homes. You must bring
My Son back into the hearts of your children. You must restore
prayer to your home. ...............The example being shown by
many parents is poor. How can you expect your children to follow
the road to the Kingdom, when you have lost the road yourselves,
and by your example you have set your children onto the road to
perdition. A great responsibility has been placed upon the parents
of the world, for they will stand in judgment before the Father
for the fall of their children's souls. (vol I page 151)
DECEMBER 29, 1973 - Better, My children, that you have
a small circle of blessed friends than to socialize among the
wicked. Make your home a fortress of godliness. Remove your children
from a world that has become, and given to satan. The greatest
responsibility for the young soul will be given to the parents.
Keep the Faith in the heart of those you love. (vol I page 153)
DECEMBER 31, 1973 - Parents must bring into their homes
reading matter that brings the knowledge of God to their children.
The Father is much grieved that satan has entered into many homes
and the souls of many children in this manner; by the placement
of books of degradation within the homes, many by their parents.
........The Father directs all in a family unit to lead the simple
life. This will mean the eradication from their way of life the
sophisticated, new rationalization of sin. (vol I page 156)
MARCH 18, 1974 - St. Joseph: My child, Veronica, it is
not often I speak, preferring to remain behind as consolation
to my dear family. However, my heart is town as I watch the abominations
and the destruction of young souls. Would I offer myself as sacrifice
for the salvation of these young souls I would present myself
to the Father. Many young souls will be taken from your world
that they may enter the Kingdom and not fall to satan. (vol I
page 171)
St. Joseph: Repeat, my child, my words. Families do honor to your
homes. Fathers, be a father, discipline your children. Mothers,
do not discard your role as the mother; why have you sought to
stand side by side with your husband, without being subservient
to him? You have lost your honor. The example you give to your
children can lead them nowhere but into the darkness. A strong
tree will bear good fruit, a tree that is fed with impure waters
will not grow to maturity, but will die and wither on the vine.
Prayer must be entered into the lives of your children. Prayer
must be a way of life now, for you have chosen of your will to
cast aside the words of the Father. (vol I page 171,172)
I have asked My beloved children, to read the Book of Life so
that they may become knowledgeable, for it is in the knowledge
of your God that you will be able to stand forth as true disciples
of a Father. The Book of Life and Love, the Bible, shall have
been taken from you, and the words once read will remain in your
heart. Fathers of families and mothers, to be an example of this
knowledge to your children, take them with you to a quiet corner
and read, for in this manner will they learn the truth and be
given the light. Outside your doors, My children, We do not see
many good examples. (vol I page 173)
APRIL 6, 1974 - The Father set you upon earth to do battle
with satan, and to return in triumph and glory to the Kingdom.
Instead, We find that many of you have made your choice and gone
into the darkness. You have been deceived, you have accepted delusion.
You will now recover yourselves in the Heart of My Son, you call
the Eucharist. You will read your Book of Life, so that the truth
will enter your mind. And cast off the books of satan that now
enter your homes and the hearts of your children. Parents, you
will be true parents in the light of God, for the day will come
when there will be great anguish in the hearts of parents who
have fallen, and failed to bring discipline and the knowledge
of God to their homes. (vol I page 187)
APRIL 13, 1974 - The example in the home is very, very
poor. So husbands now, you will act with love to your wives, but
you will keep them in discipline. Many of them have lost their
way. Discipline! And wives, honor your husbands, and do your role
as mothers in honor to your God. We see the example of the homes
is very poor. It is not without meaning that We have chosen these
colors. Womanhood must be returned to the state in which the Father
created it. Right at this moment, a great Chastisement is coming
upon you, for you have cast aside your role as women. This you
will not do without receiving great Chastisement. There will be
division in homes unless the fathers stand forth as examples to
their sons and daughters, and the mothers return to their roles
as mothers in the light of God the Father. That is all, My child.
(vol I page 195)
MAY 22, 1974 - Mothers, whatever shall B-E-C-O-M-E of
your children? Only You Can Save now your children. The leaders
have gone astray. They have scattered the sheep. Gather your little
ones before they, too, become lost. Fortify their souls against
the evil about them by placing the sacramentals upon their bodies.
For the body is the temple of the Holy Spirit within. (vol I page
197)
JUNE 18, 1974 - Parents, I cannot direct you with more
urgency than I can now to call your aid in governing the lives
of your children with great care. The foundation of their Faith
must start in the homes. The young years, the tender years of
their childhood must be given to the knowledge of the Father and
the role they must play upon earth as pilgrims, as disciples for
the Father in Heaven. (vol I page 221)
JULY 15, 1974 - The example We see of many parents is poor.
Mothers, where is the word mother on your earth? So few true mothers
remain. They compete with their daughters, My children. Vanity,
lust, fornication, adultery, all in the homes! All vile manners
of fornication, tearing down the sanctity of the home. Parents,
mothers, you are responsible as a parent for the souls of your
children. If you permit them to expose their bodies to the public
eye, you are guilty of a sin! You are guilty and shall receive
your recompense! Discipline your children, you will remain in
the light. Discipline them, or you shall cry bitter tears of anguish.
You will have to be an outcast. You will be laughed at and scorned.
Yes, My Son was laughed at and scorned. Do not expect your cross
to be any lighter. You will have to pick up your cross and follow
My Son, the same road. (vol I page 231,232)
JULY 25, 1974 - All parents must prepare themselves to
do great battle with satan. He will pit father against son, mother
against daughter, and there will be much dissension within the
family. Pray, pray within your homes and you will go through this
period of sorrow with hope, confidence in the victory over the
evil, the evil that has entered into many homes. ........The time
will come, parents, listen well! The time will come when your
children shall turn you over to be executed so great will be the
power of satan. (vol I page 236)
SEPTEMBER 7, 1974 - The enemies of the Father have worked
well to remove Me, My children, from among you. Keep the monuments,
the statues in your homes. Recover the Old Testaments and books
that are being cast into the fires and destroyed and replaced
with the works of satan. Read these good books of old to your
children, Keep the Faith in the hearts of those you love, for
you will find satan sending his agents to your doors. Guard your
families with the sacramentals given to you. Pray a constant vigilance
of prayer, My children. I cannot caution you enough. My voice
grows weak. My years on earth time grow short. I come to you,
My arms filled with graces, graces for the asking, graces in abundance,
graces for cure and conversion. (vol I page 255)
SEPTEMBER 13, 1974 - Many homes are defiled by the example
of the parents. The children, innocent victims of their elders,
whatever shall become of them? Pray, pray for the children! Parents,
you who have heard My words of caution, protect your children
for satan has seated himself beside your door! He awaits to devour
your child when he leaves your home, setting agents among you.
(vol I page 264)
OCTOBER 2, 1974 - Immoral practices are being condoned
in the homes! We see the home life of the children being destroyed!
What example as parents do you give to your children! As you sow,
so shall you reap! The sins of the parents shall be visited upon
the children! Many parents will shed bitter tears, but too late!
T-O-O L-A-T-E! ............My child, it is not passing
by the Father. Nothing is unseen to the Father! He knows your
past, your future and the present. Many parents have set their
children against the mission from Heaven! They will receive a
just recompense for this offense. (vol I page 272)
DECEMBER 28, 1974 - We are much grieved in Heaven to view
the abominations being committed in many homes! The darkness has
set into many homes! All parents must open their hearts and look
into their homes objectively. Have you set your house in order?
Have you brought the knowledge of your God to your children? Have
you cast out of your home the abominations placed there by satan?
The box of evil, your televisions, the books of degradation and
perversion, pornography! Yes, My child, do not be startled! Many
parents read these abominable books and set a bad example to their
children!............Many parents have lost the way and in this
manner shall lead their children astray. Awaken from your slumber,
parents! Whatever shall become of your children? Many parents
shall gnash their teeth and shed bitter tears of sorrow! Too late!
Too late So great is the darkness of your world!...............There
is much lacking in the homes on your earth, My children. Piety,
sanctity, words that are lost among you. You have chosen to accept
the ways of the world and bring them into your homes. You have
cast out the images of piety We have given you, the statues and
the founts of pious waters. (vol I page 315)
Know, My children, that you as parents must guard the souls of
your children. You must monitor your children's lives! Set an
example of piety! We find many mothers an abomination in the eyes
of their fathers! They disport their bodies like pagans! They
permit their daughters to dress shamefully, until these mislead
children no longer recognize sin and it has become a way of life
for them.............The example of many parents in their homes
is poor! Awaken! Awaken now from your darkness! Your children
are without shepherds! Your children are without guidance. Parents,
you will stand before the Father in judgment for the loss of your
children's souls! (vol I page 316)
MARCH 18, 1975 - The foundation for a young life is found
in the family. We find much lacking in the example of many parents.
They have forgotten their role as parents and they are feeding
their children well with the contaminating abundance of your nation
and the world, however, their souls are being starved for the
light. (vol I page 338)
Mothers must teach their children the true Faith. Fathers must
fulfill their mission as fathers to their children. The example
in many homes is poor and will not be tolerated by the Eternal
Father. Measure for measure, you shall reap what you have sown............Parents
must give to their children the knowledge of the Commandments
of the Father. No excuse is accepted for casting aside these commandments.
(vol I page 342)
MARCH 29, 1975 - St. Michael: Children of God, stand fast
in your Faith. Be a good example to your children for when they
will leave you, you will not wonder what fate they have received
beyond the veil. Prepare your children's souls well! Do not expect
the teachers of your schools, your government and institutions
to give the truth to your children. This as parents you must do.
(vol I page 352)
MAY 28, 1975 - There will be discord in homes, and the
parents who have set their children onto the road of spiritual
darkness, My child, shall reap the reward of their evil; lacking
discipline, and setting their children's hearts without mercy,
without, love, and without knowledge of their God. (vol I page
369)
JUNE 18, 1975 - The heads of all households, mothers, fathers,
will bend your knee now in prayer with your children. You must
now appear to your God with a humble heart, do penance, make atonement
and many sacrifices. (vol I page 378)
JULY 15, 1975 - St. Joseph: My child, you will make it
known to mankind that the head of an earthly family is the father.
The Father Eternal will guide the father, the head of the household.
A woman of earth shall not cast aside her role as mother and housekeeper.
In her role as mother, she shall be the guardian of her children's
souls and a helpmate of her husband and a guardian also of his
earthly soul and the soul eternal. By her example in her household,
she has the power, as woman, for good or evil. She shall stay
in her home and guide her children. (vol I page 381)
The example by many of our dedicated is poor, therefore, the heads
of families must now take it upon themselves to be guardians of
the faith in their household! The children are the victims of
their elders, therefore, the parents shall teach their children
in truth. (vol I page 383)
JULY 25, 1975 - Parents, as guardian of your children's
souls, you must have the courage to come forward and act upon
this for it will be you as parents who shall cry tears of bitter
remorse when you know that these children have been lost forever
to the Eternal Kingdom for many shall fall into the abyss. The
prince of darkness, satan, shall claim many young souls. (vol
I page 387)
My children, follow the example in family of My mother and dear
father. Children must respect their elders. There is no unity
in the homes upon earth for they have forgotten the example given
to them.......Parents, you must teach your children. Do not send
them out into your world to be instructed by the father of liars
who has done his work well in your schools. .......Your home must
be a refuge for your children. Place about them the things of
your God. Remove from your homes the trappings of the world, soul
destructors. Soul destructors, My children, that have been created
by satan to capture the souls of your children............Sin
has become a way of life. Awaken now from your blindness, My children,
upon earth. You are sending your children onto the road to destruction!
(vol I page 388)
AUGUST 14, 1975 - Have you, as parents, prepared your family?
Have you set your household in order? I have asked you to place
in your homes the Book of Life and Love, your Bible. Parents,
you must read this to your children for they shall not receive
the knowledge of their God outside of your door. The teachers
have given themselves to the world, blinded of spirit, hardened
of heart, and deafened of ear have they become. Too late they
will awaken, in shock, knowing that the time has run out for their
repatriation! The Ball of Redemption is out there, My children.
The Eternal Father has the day and the hour! (vol I page 398)
We are displeased, discouraged, and disheartened, My children,
at watching inside the homes of many; the many have become multitudinous,
My children. We find much lacking in the homes, the family has
deteriorated and corroded! Little by little, We see the structure
of the family life disintegrating. There is little discipline
and not holiness, by far, in many of these homes, My children.
(vol I page 399)
SEPTEMBER 13, 1975 - I have asked you to retire from this
world of yours that has been given to satan. Homes shall be a
fortress against the evil. You will nourish the souls of your
children within your home. Strong fathers of strong will, disciples!
Mother of good example; examples of purity and piety, and chastity!
It is a sorrow to My Heart to observe that the nature of mankind
has become as animal!! (vol I page 412,413)
NOVEMBER 20, 1975 - The parents of earth must make a firm
effort to safeguard their children by giving stern direction,
if necessary, and not be permissive in the rearing of their children.
Do not allow you children to rule you, but set a good example
and use a firm discipline. (vol I page 438)
My children, My Mother has come to you as a Mediatrix between
God and man. Earth years have passed; souls continue to descend
into the abyss! Your children go fast into spiritual darkness!
And as parents, what are you doing to save your children's souls?
Are you also joining those who have lost the way? Are you giving
yourselves to all manners and pleasures of the flesh, while your
souls are starving? The Spirit of Truth is growing dim upon your
earth! (vol I page 441)
DECEMBER 6, 1975 - The children must be guided by the family.
The Truth, the Faith, the Tradition, must be instilled in their
hearts by the mothers and fathers of a family. Do not expect your
children to go beyond your doors and be instructed in truth, for
the world has been given to satan. Many who should be showing
a firm example, have gone the easy way of the flesh, for they
care more for the treasures and glory of this world-earth, that
what the future has for them. Hell is open wide, the abyss is
filling continuously with souls that have fallen into darkness.
Will you not rescue them, My children, with your acts of sacrifice
and prayer?.(vol I page 450)
MARCH 18, 1976 - St. Joseph: The father shall be the head
of the household. A woman shall remain a companion to her husband.
What manner of foul evils are now entering upon your homes and
the lives of your children? What examples as parents have you
given to your children? Many tears of sorrow shall be shed by
parents, too late! The abyss, hell, is open wide, and we stand
and watch, helpless to recover these souls. ..............We look
into many homes, my children, and find discord, disunity, and
sorrow, confusion and despair, manners of aberration, the matrimonial
bond broken, sin becoming a way of life. The family that will
pray together shall stay together. (vol I page 476)
APRIL 10, 1976 - Parents are responsible for the guidance
and the salvation now of their children's souls. Discipline must
be returned to the homes, and parents must set an example of purity
and godliness in their homes. Do not expect others to replace
you in guiding your children. It is your duty, it is your purpose,
it is your station in life; and you will not reject your responsibility,
for then you reject your children and will cast them onto the
road to hell. (vol I page 481)
MAY 15, 1976 - Bring the children to Us, but do not take
them down the wrong road. Parents, give them the light while there
is time. Save your children, for your hearts will be torn with
anguish. What greater joy, My children, in the heart of a parent,
when a child must come to Us over the veil and this parent has
the comfort of heart to know that child has been saved. And what
sadness to a parent to wonder and plead for an eternity upon earth
for the redemption of a soul that the parent, through negligence,
through blindness, through a dimness of faith, allowed, permitted
his child to go onto the wrong road, a road leading to ultimate
damnation. (vol I page 488)
JUNE 12, 1976 - Parents, have you no discipline to give
your children? As parents, you shall be responsible before the
Eternal Father for the fall of your children's souls. Take yourselves,
parents, from the world. Open your eyes and look into the lives
of your children. You have become engrossed, as parents, with
worldly cavorting and pleasures. You pamper the bodies, the temporal
bodies of your children, while you starve their souls, the eternal
soul of your children. .........What are you teaching your children
in your homes? Parents, you bring depravity in your reading matters,
books of filth! You call yourselves sophisticated and worldly?
For what? To impress a mankind? When you come over the veil no
man shall stand forward and be able to plead your cause; you will
come stripped before the Eternal Father Who will look into your
heart, and what measure of merit have you brought with you? (vol
I page 501)
JULY 24, 1976 - All parents hold the measure of responsibility
for the salvation of their children's souls. Do not expect others
to save your children. You must retain the Faith in their hearts
through your homes and your family unity. Satan has sown discord
within the family circles. It will be a struggle in the days ahead
to keep your children from falling into the web of evil that is
slowly ensnaring the world. Satan is weaving his web of evil like
the black widow. (vol I page 514)
AUGUST 5, 1976 - Parents, guide your children, for you
will suffer much if you neglect this duty. Guide them not in the
ways of the world, but the ways of your God. (vol I page 520)
SEPTEMBER 7, 1976 - My children, if you love as you profess
with your mouth, act upon this. Show by example, a good example
to your children. They must receive this knowledge of the way
from their parents and the example in their homes. O My children,
the reward to you in the end will be far greater than you can
ever imagine, for you will be looking for the salvation of your
loved ones. And how sorrowful and dejected a state for a mother
or father to realize too late that they did not do enough, they
did not care enough, to lead their children onto the road to Heaven.
..........There must be a constant vigilance within the homes.
Parents must not be caught up in the cares of their worldly living,
in their pursuit of pleasure and entertainment, and leave their
children to wander, undisciplined, unguided, and falling into
sin and the loss of their souls. (vol I page 530)
OCTOBER 2, 1976 - Parents have a grave responsibility in
these hours of trial ahead to gather their children in their households
and instill in them the truth and the knowledge of their Faith.
Do not open your doors and shove your children out of your thresholds
to be guided into the darkness and to meet with the ravenous wolves
outside your doors! Accept your duty and responsibility as a parent
for the salvation of your children's souls. (vol I page 546)
OCTOBER 6, 1976 - O My children, We call upon all parents
to bring discipline into the hearts of their children. They are
wandering without purpose and knowledge of their religion. They
are wandering without leadership. You, as parents, have the greatest
responsibility for the salvation of your children's souls. (vol
I page 548)
NOVEMBER 20, 1976 - You will wear your sacramentals and
guard the doors of your homes. Prepare your children so that when
they go outside of your home they will not fall into the conspiracy
of evil. Pray a constant vigilance of prayer. The power of prayer
is great to the ears of the Eternal Father. Ask and you shall
receive. (vol I page 559)
DECEMBER 28, 1976 - Keep pure and holy thoughts in your
minds, for the eyes are the mirror for your soul. Your example
as parents must be one of discipline, of faith, and of purity.
As you sow, so shall ye reap. (vol I page 578)
DECEMBER 7, 1976 - I caution you all to remain within your
family circles. Bar your doors to all but your immediate families
and close friendships. The forces of evil are gathered to destroy
the children of God. (vol I page 566)
DECEMBER 31, 1976 - Parents, you are becoming degenerate
in the raising of your children. You have fallen in line with
the agents of hell. Do you consider yourselves adult? Do you consider
yourselves responsible? Do you consider yourselves sophisticated
because you join the world? And what knowledge do your children
have of their future life? What knowledge do you impart to them
of their God? I say unto you, there will be many tears shed and
much gnashing of teeth very soon, My children. (vol I page 580)
V O L
U M E I I
FEBRUARY 10, 1977 - My children, parents of the young,
you must keep the Faith in your homes. Your example must be one
of godliness. You must keep your children upon the right road,
the narrow road. Do not foster in them a love of the material;
do not foster in them by your example the love of pleasure, the
love of pleasure that exceeds, far exceeds the love of their God.
(vol II page 24)
MARCH 18, 1977 - Your children, what will become of your
children? What manner of example are you permitting to be given
to your children?.........Mothers and fathers, you must now bring
rigid discipline into your household. As parents, you have an
obligation to protect your children's souls. Do not depend upon
or expect your pastors or your teachers in your schools to protect
and build up the defenses for your children against the onslaught
of evil. As parents, the full responsibility for the salvation
of your children's souls will fall upon you. (vol II page 26)
MAY 18, 1977 - Oh, My children, My heart is torn, as a
Mother's heart is torn, when I see all of the crimes and violations
of the little children being committed by parents, not only strangers,
but parents of innocent children subjecting these innocents to
all manner of debasement and violation! Woe to the parent that
has given his child to satan for worldly gain. ...........Woe
to the parent who sells the soul of his child for human gain!
It is better that he as a child had died in his mother's womb!
(vol I page 43)
Do not fall for the evil that man has created of taking the knowledge
from the minds of the young of the existence of hell and purgatory,
and even the Eternal Kingdom of the Father in Heaven. You must,
as parents, now retain this truth in your children's hearts, for
I assure you many bitter tears of regret shall soon come upon
men. They will cry, but too late. (vol II page 45)
JUNE 4, 1977 - You will all keep a constant vigilance of prayer in your homes. Guard your doors well against evil. Gather the graces for your children and keep their armor upon them at all times. You will meet with much rebuttal from the world, for people of the world accept only the world, and people of the spirit are known only to those of the spirit, My children. This is a riddle that you
will understand in due time. Do not become unevenly yoked. Do
not subject yourselves or your children to sources of temptation
and evil. Birds of a feather will always flock together. Learn
by this lesson, My children. (vol II page 55)
JUNE 16, 1977 - Parents, be an example of purity and goodness
and disciplinarians in your homes. Your children enter outside
your doors into a world of ravenous wolves ready to devour their
spirit and crush them, until they cannot rise above the darkness
without your help and guidance. You cannot, at this time, turn
them over to others to teach the way; you must do this now yourselves!
Take yourselves away from your daily pursuits, your seeking of
worldly gain and materialism, pleasures of the flesh! For what?
You cast aside the true way and you go farther into the darkness
and meet satan and his consorts. .................My children,
guard the youth, protect your family now, and you will not have
your heart torn in the near future. there is much discord now,
My children; We observe in family life a disunity which is not
good. There must be discipline by the father and the mother. Faith
shall be your beacon. Faith shall make you victorious. Believe
and you will be given the way..............All must persevere
in the days ahead. You have no one but yourselves now to save
and your children. And if you have charity of heart and additional
graces to offer to the world, go seek your brothers and sisters
who otherwise would be lost without your help. Guard your children
well and you shall not cry for them; for, My children, all knowledge
is given to you when you come over the veil, and how bitter the
heart will be torn with anguish of a mother who sees her child
cast out of the light. (vol II page 59)
JULY 15, 1977 - Homes must now become a stronghold of godliness!
Homes must be a refuge for the children against the onslaught
of satan now loosed in your world. Parents must give a good example
of godliness and piety. Woe to the parent who discards or goes
along with apathy in his role as a parent. There will be much
gnashing of teeth and woe set upon the earth by the evil ones
now loosed from the abyss. The forces of 666 are now raging like
ravenous demons throughout your world. They have entered into
the governments of the nations; they have entered into all medias
of communication, and they have entered into My Son's Church!
(vol II page 64)
AUGUST 5, 1977 - My children,
can I bring you a message of joy when My heart is torn by the
murders and the loss of respect for your elders? Children against
parents, parents going about, running to and fro, marrying and
giving in marriage, living adulterously, consorting with evil,
with homosexuals and lesbians! What manner of life do you show
for your children to make example of? Woe to the parent that scandalizes
his child. It is better if that parent had died in his mother's
womb! Woe to the pastors that scandalize the children! They shall
burn in an eternity of hell for their deception! (vol II page
72)
Your children are the innocent victims of their elders. The example
in homes is poor, until the house shall be divided. It will be
father against son, mother against daughter, as satan sets himself
in their midst. Love shall become cool, love for neighbor shall
become cool because of fear of neighbor, so great will be the
evil of the world...........My children, you will all link your
hands for a solid wall of unity against this evil. Your links
shall be prayer and sacrifice, penance! You will use all of the
sacramentals given to you from the establishment of My Church
upon earth. Let the scoffers laugh at you; accept their condemnation
even, for in the end you will receive your crown. (vol II page
73)
The eyes are the mirror of the soul! And what do your children
look at but filth and pornography! And who has brought this before
their eyes but their parents by their permissiveness and their
lack of organization! I say organization', because they run to
and fro, buying and selling, marrying and giving in marriage,
coveting the neighbor's wife and husband! All manner of abomination
in the eyes of your God! Even now sin is being condoned until
it becomes a way of life. And for what? For the ultimate damnation
of a generation! (vol II page 74)
AUGUST 13, 1977 - Murder, raping, distortions of all manner
of godly inclinations, shall prevail upon your earth. Your children
are the major victims of their elders now. As parents, you have
now a special mission; to protect your children against satan
and his agents. (vol II page 77)
SEPTEMBER 7, 1977 - You must, as parents, I repeat My Mother's
counsel to you, you must as parents now, be guardians of the souls
of your children for you cannot hand them over to anyone outside
of your home, for the souls of whom knock upon your door are evil.
Many will be lost in the coming tribulation in the days ahead.
(vol II page 81)
SEPTEMBER 28, 1977 - Parents, you have now the chance and
the time to right the wrong that has been done to your children.
Can you in all sincerity and honesty say that you have been guiltless
in the fall of your children? O parents, great suffering has been
given to man, and much suffering will still be experienced in
your world. (vol II page 87)
I warned you in the past, My children, that as you become murderers
in heart, your children shall become murderers in heart. And it
shall be parents and children, division in the home; parents and
children fighting. Children rising up and putting to death the
parents! And why? Because they have no light in the home, no light
of faith. Souls are in darkness, and the prince of darkness is
satan. (vol II page 88)
OCTOBER 1, 1977 - You have sown in the hearts of your children,
corruption, greed, avarice, vanity, materialism, humanism, modernism.
loss of morals, and now what will you get but murder within the
home! Sin has become a way of life. Life will have no value. Charity
has grown cold in the hearts of most. My children, I repeat again:
Only a few will be saved in the final count. The rapture is approaching.
..........My children, sin has become a way of life, and your
children shall turn upon you. It will be father against son, mother
against daughter, division in the household. All because you did
not prepare your house for these times. Recognize now the signs
of your times! ..............Satan walks the earth, entering into
the body of any man, woman or child to work his will in the world.
You will see murders; you will see acts committed by your children
so despicable that you will say that only satan, from the abyss,
the depths of hell, could create and conceive of such evil! (vol
I page 91)
NOVEMBER 1, 1977 - O My children, My child, listen to me
well and shout it to the world that satan is now upon earth in
a human form. As in the past, I counseled you, My children, to
prepare your families, your homes, your children, for the onslaught
of satan when he walks the earth. Now he is here upon your earth,
and you must do battle with him. You have been given your armor
in sacramentals..........You must not abandon My Son. You must
go to the tabernacles of the world and eat of His Body and His
Blood, the Bread of life..(vol II page 96)
My children, your children, parents are the victims now of your
laxity. They are the victims of their elders. All foul manner
of acts are being taught them in their schools, in their secret
societies. And why? Because you as parents are too lax in your
duty. You flutter to and fro looking for pleasures and gathering
the materials of your world. And for what? For I shall soon make
them as naught, nothing. (vol II page 96)
DECEMBER 7, 1977 - Sin has become a way of life in your
country and many countries throughout your world. In your insanity
you will bring about your own destruction. My Son's creation,
in the Father and the Holy Spirit, the good Book of Life and Love,
the Bible, is being replaced by the book of satan. Parents, you
look upon this with a smile? Are you too insane? Do you not recognize
the infiltration of your home life by satan? Your children shall
turn upon you, and put you to death! There will be division within
the home; father against son, mother against daughter, as parents
will struggle to retain the truth and the light within the homes.
(vol II page 108)
FEBRUARY 1, 1978 - Parents, you cannot now expect your
leaders in government, city, state or national, to protect your
children, for the forces of evil are solidly entrenched now in
your government. Your medias of communication are controlled.
Each and every parent must assume now full responsibility for
the salvation of their children's souls. (vol II page 116)
MARCH 15, 1978 - Evil creations from hell, all manner of
abominations are entering into the homes of your nation and the
countries throughout the world. It will be an absolute necessity
now for all parents to act as a director, a leader in the homes.
The greatest attack from satan shall be upon family life. If you
break down the family, you will break down the nation. (vol II
page 126)
MARCH 25, 1978 - Weep with Me, My child, and pray; pray
a constant vigilance. Many mothers shall join Me beneath the cross.
Many mothers shall cry as they see their children being lost to
them...........My children, you must protect your families now,
666 is not a myth, My children. It is a fact that satan, Lucifer,
is walking the earth now. The pages of the Book of Life must turn.
What was to happen in the future shall be now. Hasten, hearken
and listen to the words from Heaven. A due Chastisement shall
be set upon mankind soon. You will be given a Warning, a warning
of major proportion. Learn by it! (vol II page 135)
You as children of your God must make a firm effort now to prepare
yourselves and your families, your brothers and your sisters of
the world. Prepare them for the great Chastisement that will come
upon mankind. In your blindness, in your searching for power and
treasures of the world, you have cast aside all knowledge given
to you by your God, your inborn nature. You have cast it aside,
but you will meet with a day of reckoning, and very soon! (vol
II page 136)
APRIL 1, 1978 - My children, you will keep a firm foundation
of faith in the hearts of your children. You cannot expect others
to do this fatherly and motherly obligation. You as mothers and
fathers are the keepers for the souls of your children, and as
such you are held accountable in the eyes of all Heaven for the
fall of your children's souls. You will also as parents battle
satan as he seeks to destroy your families. It will be father
against son and mother against daughters, division in the homes,
as satan becomes stronger in his conquest. (vol II page 138)
MAY 13, 1978 - My children, parents of families, you must
now accept the great responsibility for the salvation of your
children's souls. When My Son returns. He will cry and cry again;
Where shall I find the Faith? Shall there be a flicker of faith
left when He returns? The way you are proceeding, the world's
people have become pagans, worshippers of false idols, engrossed
in materialism, modernism, humanism, socialism; every manner of
creation from satan..(vol II page 146)
MAY 27, 1978 - Parents, save yourselves the anguish of
heart, teach your children now. Give them a firm foundation of
their Faith. Many young people are taking their lives because
they have no Faith. And the way the world progresses, My children,
when I return to earth shall I find even a flicker of the true
faith left? (vol II page 154)
JUNE 1, 1978 - Parents, please, I beg of you as your Mother,
to bar your doors to all but you immediate family and workers
in the light. Satan has many faces, My children. He will come
to you even as an angel of light. If you pray, if you stay in
the spirit of light, My children, he will not delude you. (vol
II page 160)
JULY 25, 1978 - Parents must protect their children now.
Do not depend even upon your clergy to safeguard your children's
souls. Satan now is doing great battle in My Son's House upon
earth. He shall not be victorious; however, it is a test now for
all mankind. You will be guided by reading the Bible, the Book
of Life. And I repeat again for all mankind to hear: Conform to
the world and its sin and you will die on the vine! (vol II page
174)
AUGUST 14, 1978 - I have counseled parents to guard their
doors of their homes and make them strongholds for the children!
It is the young now who have become the major source for the onslaught
of satan to destroy the future of your country and many countries
throughout the world. I say 'many' My children, because, as the
days go on, the major disaster of the world war and the chastising
celestial comet set upon mankind shall leave in its wake too few
souls upon earth. (vol II page 180)
AUGUST 19, 1978 - My child and My children, Lucifer knows
how to reach mankind, for man has given himself over to pride
and arrogance. You must all pray constantly that you do not fall
into error. My children, as parents now you have full responsibility
for the salvation of your household. Your children are now at
the mercy of those who are outside the doors of your home. Many
demons are loosed upon earth now with Lucifer, and they shall
enter into the bodies of mankind and work their will. (vol II
page 183)
SEPTEMBER 13, 1978 - My children, guard the youth; protect
your family now, and you will not have your heart torn in the
near future. There is much discord now, My children; We observe
in family life a disunity which is not good. There must be discipline
by the father and the mother. Faith shall be your beacon. Faith
shall make you victorious. Believe, and you will be given the
way. (vol II page 189)
NOVEMBER 20, 1978 - My children, you must guard your families.
Watch your children. Because of the laxity of many of the men
of God in My Son's Church, because of their laxity, because they
have given themselves into all manners of sin, sins of the flesh,
Our sheep have been left to stray, and the wolves have approached
them. And many have already been lost to Us, lured away by promises
of peace and joy and eternal happiness. There shall be no peace,
there shall be no joy without the cross.(vol II page 200)
NOVEMBER 25, 1978 - Parents, I ask you now to remove from
your home all agents or signification's relating to the agents
and forces of hell, Lucifer and his demons now loosed upon earth.
Because you are not accepting the graces given to you from Heaven;
parents you are not aware that your children are being brainwashed
by Lucifer. He sends into your homes music. You accept these to
make your children happy; but there is a power called witchcraft.
Do not laugh as I tell you this. It is here, it is now, and it
is powerful, even unto the death of a human being. It is a group
that is using religion as a front, My children. There is only
one religion that can save your country and all of the countries
of the world; the religion of the cross and My Son's sacrifice
upon the cross. (vol II page 205)
NOVEMBER 25, 1978 - And My children, listen to Me well,
as I warn all parents that you will shout soon, "I beware
of My children, for they seek to kill me." Lucifer plans
to turn father against son, mother against daughter, and shall
direct them to kill within the home. You have not seen bloodshed;
a little bit here, and a little bit there, but rivers of blood
shall flow in your streets as children will turn against their
parents. .............My children, do not allow the enemies to
give you a vision of utopia without suffering. My children, do
not allow the enemies to take from you the knowledge of the existence
of Heaven, hell and purgatory. Your children are the major, now,
the major martyrs, and I say martyrs. Be it not the laxity of
the parents, the schools, and many in My Son's Church, many of
the parents would not be shedding this evening tears of remorse
and grief at the loss of your children, knowing not whether they
have been saved or lost forever. I say unto you, from the merciful
heart of your Mother: Cry not, mother, the Eternal Father is most
merciful upon you. He has opened His Heart to many of your children,
not judging them by false leaders. (vol II page 206)
MAY 26, 1979 - I counsel all parents to protect the souls
of their children by giving them a firm foundation of faith. You
cannot now expect with confidence, as you did in the past, this
knowledge to be given to your children through your schools, and
even your churches upon earth. And I say unto you, that this blight
upon mankind has entered upon all of the religions of the earth.
(vol II page 219)
JUNE 9, 1979 - O My children, as I repeat myself to you
over and over again, I have gone constantly as your Mother walking
upon your earth, guiding you out of the darkness. How often have
I cried out to you to prepare your household, to safeguard your
children, and to maintain the true knowledge of your Faith and
My Son's Church in your homes and in the hearts of the young..
(vol II page 223)
JUNE 18, 1979 - Pray a constant vigilance of prayer in
your homes. A family that prays together will stay together! Without
God in your home there will be a separation and discord. A home
in this fight with Lucifer cannot survive without prayer and dedication
to your God. Many homes shall be torn asunder by the fall of the
children. Parents shall shed tears of anguish. therefore, prevent
this now while your children are at a young age. Give them a firm
foundation of their faith. Be not afraid to speak out against
heresy and abominations, even if you have to do this against your
clergy, for many now have fallen in with the modernists, the socialists,
the communists, and some the satanists. Therefore, My children,
I make known to you the crisis that lies ahead. (vol II page 227,228)
AUGUST 4, 1979 - I ask all parents to retain the monuments,
the statues in their homes. A ask all parent and counsel you with
knowledge of what is to take place soon, that you retain upon
your children a sacramental of protection. Do not be swayed by
those, even in the clergy, who scoff at the knowledge or the existence
of the supernatural. Pray for them for they are truly a sad sight
in the eyes, before the Eternal Father.. (vol II page 237)
AUGUST 14, 1979 - Penance, atonement and sacrifice, My
children, I beg of you! The family is disintegrating; there is
no discipline. I hear the word 'love' expounded throughout your
earth in all medias. But love has been lost! (vol II page 240)
I come to you as your Mother, a Mediatrix from God to man. I come
to you to console you, all parents who weep, all parents under
trial. Come to Me, and above all, before Me. I say: Come to My
Son Who you neglect. You no longer visit Him at the tabernacles
of the world. You do not strengthen your bodies or your souls,
for you do not nourish your souls with His Body. (vol II page
241)
Pray for your children. Parents, do you really know your children?
Have you taught them to pray? Have you given them the knowledge
of their faith? No-o-o, I say unto you as your God! Your actions,
your heart is not unknown to Me! The Eternal Father looks into
your heart; you cannot hide your sin! It will be exposed; no evil
is ever triumphant! The Eternal Father will turn all evil to good,
so desperate is He that not even one soul be lost to Him. (vol
II page 242)
SEPTEMBER 14, 1979 - Parents will suffer greatly for any
laxity in the rule of their children. As I warned you in the past,
I repeat anew, to counsel you, that Lucifer and his agents from
hell, Lucifer walks the earth now seeking to take command
of all governments of the world, to destroy the world. Lucifer
seeks to take Our children's souls, the spirit of light from them,
and take all with him into the abyss. (vol II page 247)
As parents, as human beings created by your God, you have become
as a nation degenerate in your seeking and godless in your rule
until the saints in Heaven cry out for all Heaven to stop the
abominations being committed now upon earth. (vol II page 248)
Watch, My children, and pray always. Keep your homes a fortress
for your family and your children. I tell you this to counsel
you as My Mother counsels you. I do not intend for you to be filled
with fear, for fear can be a tool of the devil, of satan himself.
But I counsel you that you may learn wisdom, and I pray that as
the Eternal Father directs you from Heaven in the light that you
do not have to gather and learn your wisdom from sorrowful experiences.
(vol II page 249)
NOVEMBER 20, 1979 - Have you all made a firm effort to
prepare your households and protect your children? There will
be much weeping and gnashing of teeth and woe set upon the earth
by Lucifer and the forces of darkness, his agents from hell loosed
upon the earth now in full under the title of 666. (vol II page
263)
JUNE 18, 1980 - Pray constantly your Rosary, your beads
of prayer to Heaven. Remain unified in your family lives. The
institution of your country, the great foundation is based on
family life. Destroy the family and you destroy your country.
The enemies, the enemy is already within your country. Watch and
pray well, My children. (vol II page 272)
MAY 30, 1981 - Your homes will now be your fortress against
evil. For once you go without your door, can you say that you'll
live forevermore? Or shall you return to that door? (vol II page
283)
OCTOBER 1, 1983 - There is only one recourse to hold back
the flames, My child, that you have viewed, that is an outpouring
to Heaven of penance and prayer, and sacrifice. Your world is
heading towards a cataclysm of massive proportion. Many parents
shall lose their sons and shall cry to Heaven. Why, oh why, has
this come upon our world? (vol II page 395)
APRIL 14, 1984 - O My children, I hear the pleas of mothers
with children that have vanished, it seems, from the face of your
earth. So big and so numerous are the catastrophes to a home that
you would think, My child and My children, that they would understand
and accept the truth that satan is loosed upon your earth, satan
and his whole legion of devils. Satan and his legion are known
to you as 666. (vol II page 401)
JUNE 30, 1984 - My children, you must wear your armor and
protect your beings. I have asked you many times to bar your homes
to all but your immediate family and close Shrine workers, for
those who knock upon your doors will be evil, and will be sent
there to invade you. (vol II page 409)
M E S
S A G E S
JULY 1, 1985 (MSG) - My children, not only with the canned
foods will you store just food, but you must also make known to
your families and your friends that they had best keep blankets
and water in tight containers; for there will be on the onset
of the Chastisement, there will be nothing that you can buy due
to contamination. ............Your homes are protected by a supernatural
being, with St. Michael, the head of the armies from Heaven. Just
as in the days of old, so will it be, My children, that there
will be sent to you an angel of death, but in human form............Your
children, I cry for you, poor mothers. Know that My Mother's heart
is solaced only by the knowledge that these children shall not
be lost to Heaven. But your young children have been disappearing
from your homes. And where are they, as you go to and fro, looking
for your children, and My Mother's tears fall upon you? Many shall
be found dead, but others shall never be found, for they are disposed
of in a most despicable way by a group known as the satanist...........These
groups, My child and My children, are increasing, even on your
island of Long Island. There are at least twelve major covens,
and they are using human sacrifice. These bodies, My children,
cannot be found by the police, or other authorities who seek to
help and to solace the hearts of the family members of the lost
child.
My child, I wish that you boil the water in your home. I will
tell you now, My children, if you are receiving waters for your
use in your homes, it must be boiled, because the contamination
of chemicals and waste matter, nuclear waste matter, is driving
down into the soils of the nation and polluting these waters,
which will bring imminent death to many.................My child
and My children, pray for those poor mothers who had the missing
children. There will be great punishments before this major Chastisement,
My child. There will be many punishments; many tears shall flow
from the mothers eyes, and their hearts shall be opened for mercy,
begging for mercy. ..........And I must repeat again, My child,
for the consolation of mothers. They must watch over their children
carefully, for there will be thousands upon thousands that will
vanish without a trace. The satanist cults are turning into a
armies, My child. They have already tried to attack you through
the powers that they retain from satan. Do not be affrighted,
but you must be more careful, My child, whom you let into your
house. For the souls of those who knock upon your door are knowingly,
or unknowingly to themselves, sinful and on he road to destruction,
and trying to take others with them.
JULY 25, 1985 (MSG) - My child and My children, I have
cried great tears, My child, since I last saw you, for the fathers
and mothers, the poor mothers, they do not know what lies ahead
for their children, their children of all ages. Satan and his
legion of demons and devils are loosed now upon earth in full
force. They are doing very well, My children. ...............Oh,
My child, I am crying tears; My heart is torn when I think of
the children of earth. The parents, they look away as they are
in pursuit of riches and material things of the world. None of
this can be brought into Heaven to buy your salvation. No, My
children, My Son has often said that it will be easier for a camel
to go through a needle's eye than a rich man to enter Heaven.
AUGUST 21, 1985 (MSG) - My child, you must know in your
own area and throughout the world about Catholic nations; they
have forfeited another key to Heaven when they discard the prayers
that Heaven has given to them to guard their souls and the souls
of their families and their children. These are all parts of the
armor of Heaven in the fight with the antichrist forces. My child
and My children, I must constantly warn you and repeat over and
over the necessity for wearing the Brown Scapular and also praying
My beads of prayer, the Rosary. You must keep the Rosary going
link to link, prayer to prayer, throughout your country, Canada,
and the world, My child. ..........My child and My children, there
is an evil plan now in your country, the United States of America,
and also, the boughs are reaching like an evil tree into the land
of Canada. Children are disappearing from the earth. My child
and My children, I feel it necessary that I repeat to you again,
that you do not be bored at the repetition of the Messages, for
it is urgent. Will your child be next? Many mother's hearts are
torn asunder, but they have found not the whereabouts of their
children, but many have found the possibility of the whereabouts
of their children, held as captives, for the whim and humor of
the satanist. They are increasing in your country, My child, and
all of the countries of the world. It is satan and his armies
now, knowing the time is short to battle with the children of
God.
The enemies of God are all about you. Russia has planned these
days, My child and My children. And how I have begged for years
of earth's time that Russia be consecrated to My Immaculate Heart.
When she is consecrated she will be converted, My children, and
then you shall see the world of joy again. Tears shall be banished,
and mothers shall not sorrow until they die of grief for the loss
of their children and their sons. ...............I, also, must
give to you at this time another fact of your lives upon earth.
You as parents, mothers, fathers, must guard your doors well and
rule; take discipline in the lives of your children, for they
will bring much sorrow to your hearts as they grow; they grow
in a world that has been given to satan. When your child opens
his home, the door, he will face the agents of hell loosed upon
earth to reclaim his soul. Protect your children, My children;
be sure that as a parent you do not fall down in your duties to
teach your children, for many are now receiving schooling that
is based on atheism. Their books and manuals you do not read,
My children. You must as parents be a safeguard, a home of holiness
for your children, or they will perish; and your parent's tears
shall flow upon the world, crying, too late, too late.
SEPTEMBER 7, 1985 (MSG) - Yes, My children and My child,
you cannot look back and say, 'Well, this may be happening to
my neighbors in Africa, in Europe, but why should we care? For
we can go on marrying, and singing, and being materialistic in
our modes.' But where is your soul, My children and My child?
I ask you this because if one parent refuses, and has conscionable
knowledge of his refusal being offensive to his God, if one parent
cast aside his child, no matter what age that child is, and even
into womanhood and manhood...That parent has a responsibility
to the children, his and her children, to see that they learn
fast of the knowledge of God and what is coming upon them. ...........Since
the world has given itself over to murders, murders of the unborn,
father against son, daughters against mothers, all manner of carnage;
also, being perpetrated in My House, My Church upon earth. How
long do you think I shall stand by and watch the destruction of
the young, because of parents who should not accept the role or
the name of parents, for they are destroying their children's
souls by their example.
Too few now even carry in their home a visage of Mine, My children.
I ask that visage of the Sacred Heart be placed in all homes as
protection against satan. Already, they are being discarded and
thrown in the wastebaskets, My children, so little is the Faith.
.................Do not be sorrowful, My child and My children;
there will be times of great joy for all of us. This will not
be a permanent state upon earth; earth that is covered with sin
and defilement, children against their parents, murders in every
street, killing of the unborn, and much more; much more that,
My child, that I would wish you to know, but I cannot, for the
purity of heart, instruct you on the vile deeds of the satanist.
SEPTEMBER 14, 1985 (MSG) - My child and My children, you
may ask your priests for knowledge of the stories coming from
the old, elderly fathers of My Son's Church, but can they tell
you the truth now that their seminaries have become polluted with
errors? Mothers cry to Me; I hear all of their prayers, prayers
to Heaven to save their children. And where can they find the
knowledge of the truth to teach them? That will depend now upon
an earnest mother and father, and discipline. Children are like
soft flowers that must be nourished so that their stalks will
grow; and their faces, the purity of their faces, shall rise toward
Heaven and be nourished with the fruits of life.
OCTOBER 5, 1985 (MSG) - Veronica: Now Our Lady is looking
up, and I can see - I can see missiles, I know they're missiles.
They're frightening! I see part of the world now beginning to
light up again. Our Lady is motioning, and the ball is floating
close to Her, as She points, and; and She is pointing at the United
States and Canada...............My child, I point for this reason;
though, My child, it is a most difficult message to bring to the
world, you must not be afeared; but you must shout it from the
rooftops: Russia has the upper hand now at this time in world
peace or world destruction. You must understand, the heart of
the atheist is closed to mercy and goodness; a darkened soul has
shut out the light. And they seek nothing but the destruction
of any man, woman, or child who stands in their way, to assume
and gain through hatred and deception among families, and also,
the ruination of the lives of the children of all families.
My child, you must comfort those who cry and weep for their lost
children. There will be many other mothers who shall suffer the
horrible crimes against their children. All is coming to pass
because of the sins of the older generation. Those who should
know better are so enshrouded in their own love of the material
that they cannot even visualize what they are doing to their children.
In order for your children to be saved, My parents, you must keep
a constant vigilance of prayer going throughout your home, and
those homes of your immediate families. One good example can save
a dozen, My children.
I hold all parents responsible for the fall of their children's
souls. Remember, My child and My children, I have warned you often
that once you open your door and you go out into the world, you
will enter into the kingdom of satan. You ask, My child and My
children, why is this allowed? That you must trust to the goodness
and in the goodness of the heart of the Eternal Father. You cannot,
as a human being, understand the ways. But know this, My children,
that no evil can come upon mankind if he watches and waits. And
We offer you three sacramentals in you wait for the future. ..................I
ask that the world continues to make Rosaries, and send the prayers,
link to link, throughout the world. For I still promise, that
if you will listen to My directions, given through My Son, in
the Father and the Holy Spirit; I promise to do all that I can,
My children, to save your lives upon earth; and, also, if you
must come across the veil, to save you from eternal damnation
through the Scapular and the Rosary. Pray, My children, all a
constant vigilance of prayer; that is all you have now, for the
enemy has been allowed to come into your homes.
NOVEMBER 1, 1985 (MSG) - You will pray constantly, My children.
The prayers can reach Heaven in short time, and perhaps can stop
the next tribulation. This is called a tribulation what will come
upon you next. It will be of an earth force again. However, with
your prayers, and your guarding of your homes, as We have always
told you to, with the crucifixes, you can escape with little damage,
or none at all. It will be as though the angel of death has passed
by your home. To some it will seem like a miracle, but to others
it's just an accepted part of life. For they will repeat: We are
doing as the Eternal Father has told us, and we are following
the directions of Our Blessed Mother, as She stood before us so
many times, and said, 'I am Mary, Help of Mothers. I love all
My children, and as such I will stand beside them, not wishing
that one shall fall into hell.
MAY 17, 1986 (MSG) - This I can tell you; because We are
much grieved as We look into the hearts of the mothers and fathers
throughout the world, not many are in the light. Families are
disintegrating; the state of marriage is becoming nullified. Now
it is fashionable in the United States, and many nations of the
world, to discard the Sacrament of Marriage and to live together
in sin. This, My child and My children, cannot be tolerated. ...............I
wish that all homes have a Bible within their doors. I say within
their doors, because these children that they are raising must
go out into a world that has been given over to satan. The Bible
must be ever before them, for it is their true guide to redemption.
JUNE 18, 1986 (MSG) - O My children, if you knew what was
in store for you in the near future, and that means, My child
and My children, this year, you would understand why I feel, and
why I cry tears that fall upon you. If I could, I would as your
Mother, make all atonement for you, but it is the will of the
Eternal Father that you come forward now and stand up to protect
your own souls, and, also the souls of your children and your
families. ..............Mothers, and fathers too, have gone astray
in these dark days. Materialism has replaced spiritualism, and
that is why the many catastrophes are being allowed upon your
earth. There will be more floods with death; more volcano eruptions
with death; more accidents that are not accidents; until you will
surely come to your senses and realize that there is a higher
power working at this time to bring you to your knees. ............My
child and My children, do not take My words lightly. I do not
speak to frighten you but to try to jar you from your complacency.
There will be many minor warnings given to the world; more floods,
accidents that are not accidents. There will be more murders upon
earth; father against son, mother against daughter, homes torn
asunder, for satan is loosed upon the earth. He has been given
a time, a short time now for him to gather his souls.
SEPTEMBER 27, 1986 (MSG) - Each and every soul shall be
held accountable for his soul and the souls of those about him.
Families are disintegrating. I must tell you now, My children,
the family must be returned to the holy state it was constructed
for. We shall never approve nor accept marriage and cohabitation
without marriage. We shall not accept the annulments that are
being given now to so many without due cause................My
child, Veronica, it does Our hearts well, and We feel very comforted
to know that has not been lost upon earth. We have watched now
the teachings of the children in most of the houses upon earth
of My Son, and I must say: I shed tears of pity for the parents,
for it is best now if the parents look well into the teaching
of their children in the schools, the Catholic schools of the
world. Because they will find that the theologians have crept
in now with modernism and humanism. And your children must be
protected. .........A foul situation has come about in the schools,
both public and private. They are now teaching sex education,
My chidden. And this is a debauchery of your young souls. Parents,
are you so blind that you do not investigate, or ask your children
what has happened in their classes today at school? Show you no
interest as you go about the world gathering materialism, and
seeking to break your home apart by husband and wife going in
both directions; neither do they work together to hold the home
together, but they work apart, many leaving the children astray
by not having counsel over them.
JUNE 6, 1987 (MSG) - My child, I know much of this discourse
distresses your heart, but you can imagine well, and I know you
do, My child, Veronica, the sorrow My Mother feels now that sex
education has entered upon the school system. We say unto you,
and I say to you, as your God, My children: Mothers and fathers
of the world, you will not give over your children to be taught
by demons! Satan has many loosed upon earth now. They enter into
the bodies of any man, woman or child who has fallen out of grace;
and they enter into the bodies of those who teach your children
error. ...............It is the place and the will of the Eternal
Father that the home shall be the safeguard for the children's
souls, the mother, the father. But what can We expect, My children,
when even the state of marriage, the sacrament of Marriage, is
being destroyed slowly? We know all that is going on upon earth,
living together without union under God. No, My children, that
shall also be destroyed in time; if not by sickness and death
of the body, it will also be by sickness and death of the soul..........My
children, it was never deemed by Heaven, nor the Eternal Father,
as written in the good Book of life and love, your Bible, that
man shall not cohabit with man; man shall not cohabit with man;
and man shall not seek diversion from his home by setting out
to seduce another. ...........My child and My children, are there
many strong homes left in the United States, Canada, and many
homes of the world? No, My children, the standards have been lowered.
And when the standards are lowered, satan takes over.
JUNE 18, 1987 (MSG) - My dear parents, please, listen to
your Mother! Listen to what I have to say to you, for I tell you
the truth. The Eternal Father sees all, and makes Us knowledgeable
as to what is happening upon earth that will bring its eventual
destruction. Your children are being educated in the schools to
take all Christianity from their lives, and believe not in the
supernatural things of God, but the diabolical process of satan,
in cults.........All the holiness of Marriage has been cast aside.
We see now children growing up into sin, as they go forth into
life unprepared by their parents. ........My child and My children,
We ask of all of you, prayer, atonement and sacrifice. Is this
too much to ask for the salvation of your soul, and of all the
souls in your family?..............I say families must be strong
in this age of sorrow, this age of darkness. It is the family,
within the family, that the children must be taught. Do not depend
upon your schools, for they have been infiltrated with evil. Do
not depend upon your neighbors, for they are often caught up in
the world of satan.
OCTOBER 2, 1987 (MSG) - We know what is right under your
God. The Eternal father has given you the way to Heaven. It is
not an easy road; it is a narrow road, long and narrow for many.
Others have reached it early through the grace of their God. I
know the removal of children from the earth at early ages brings
great sorrow to a parent's heart; however, when they are removed,
they go into Heaven. ...........My child, I do not wish to burden
you any longer with the miseries upon earth. I wish to talk only
a while, a little bit, about the children of earth, the young
children. The parents must be very careful, My children, who you
send your children to be taught from. Much evil is being developed
in the schools in the name of sexuality. Why cannot We have Our
children pure of thought and mind? How can We, My children, when
the teachers there are being taught to bring in sex education
to your children? This belongs not in the schools, but in the
homes. This is an obligation of the parents. It will only lead
to much greater disaster by having this sex education in the school
system.
OCTOBER 1, 1988 (MSG) - We have other things to discuss,
My child, before the evening is over. I want the world to know
now that We will no longer tolerate the murders of the unborn.
The Eternal Father finds that children He had great plans for
to bring the true Faith to the world and to save His Son's Church
they have been murdered in the womb. Satan is the father of all
liars, and many reasons are given for abortion. And even now in
Our convents, they are going about consoling women who are about
to have abortions; whereas they do not tell them the truth that
they are murderers, and they are mothers who will murder their
own children.
OCTOBER 6, 1988 (MSG) - Mothers must now take full precedence
for their children. In other words, My child, they must be the
teachers now, for those who were teachers have given themselves
over now to all forms of Modernism, and pacifying those that are
evil in their teachings. They do not stand on their two feet solidly
before their bishops, who are doing wrong in the teaching of their
children. It will be up to the parents at this time to go forward
and be a true parent in the eyes of God by teaching their children
at home. ................Remember, My children, a constant vigilance
of prayer. Use no excuses to relieve your family of this obligation
to the Eternal Father. And remember again, My children, the two
prayers that makes the heart rise to Heaven. Teach your children,
for they will not be taught any longer in the schools. ..........My
child and My children, listen to this well; guard your children.
Do not let them be influenced by their teachers today, for modernism
has set in, and also immodesty. There are many teachers whose
example are poor to the children; therefore, it is now the duty
of each parent to guard their children's souls. Otherwise, the
day will come when they will shed great tears of sorrow, not knowing
in what realm their children lie, now that they have passed over
the veil.
MARCH 18, 1989 (MSG) - Now, My children, I speak to the
mothers of the world. You must make a firm effort to be a righteous
mother and a godly mother, following the rules from Heaven. For
eventually every one of you will come over the veil, and you must
make an account for your actions upon earth. We find that you
are all lacking at this time, because as parents, you have been
caught up in the wheel of misfortune for your children. They are
being ignored, and also their religious upbringing is nil. ............My
parents of the world, I say unto you, as your God: This will not
be tolerated much longer. For if you parents will not raise your
children in the light, you will raise them in darkness, and they
will eventually rise up and even kill you. There are many satanic
institutions throughout the world now that are waiting for your
children. Are you going to allow them to fall into their hands
because you are too busy elsewhere to watch your children? Are
you turning them over to the satanic tube, the television? Yes,
My children, they are learning to kill by the television. They
are learning disrespect for the parents. They laugh at you when
you are not watching. That, My children of the world, parents,
your children are to be lost....
JUNE 17, 1989 (MSG) - My child and My children of the world,
I want you to know this: For the perseverance in the light ahead
to stop the satanists in their quest to take your children from
your homes, I ask all parents at this time to be a steady guardian
of their children and not to become obsessed with things of this
world, the pleasures and the monetary gain. ..............I wish
that all parents who hear My voice tonight be alerted to the fact
that there are over 10,000, now, cults in the United States and
Canada alone. Many children have been slain by them in sacrifice
to satan. Is this what you want, My children? ..................Parents,
keep a close watch on your children. Be sure that they do not
leave your home without your knowing where they are going, for
many will not return............This adulation of satanism
shall not be prevalent when the Eternal Father gives Us the
means to reach all humanity with this plan from Heaven to save
your children from the satanists.
JUNE 18, 1991 (MSG) - Parents, I ask you now to get rid
of the infernal machines in your homes! I warned you through many
earth years that this will be a point of destruction for your
children. If you are least, I ask at least, which is the least
you can do, is to monitor what your children are seeing. Satan
has created the infernal tube. Heaven did not deem it to be in
the homes of the just. ..............Guard your children, mothers
of the world, guard them against the forces that are loosed upon
earth. It is truly the final battle raging with Lucifer. ...........Mothers
must exercise great care over those placed in their trust by the
Eternal Father. The abomination that hits the very Heart of the
Eternal Father committed on the earth is the murders of the unborn.
At the time of conception, the Holy Spirit makes the child, and
the breath of the almighty gives it life. Therefore, you shall
not create a monstrous machine throughout your world! That is
what its become, a machine! No human could conceive, but satan,
of this act of the sacrifice of the unborn! Murder in the eyes
of the Eternal Father. ...............St. Theresa: Parents must
guard their children, even from their teachers. Many are now direct
agents of hell, though they walk in human bodies. Protect your
children with their sacramentals. Teach them!.....Please, I ask
you mothers, monitor your children's lives. Do not be an escapist,
running from home and finding pleasures of the world. Bring a
prayer life back to your children before it is too late. You will
be held accountable for the fall of the souls of the children.
Therefore, I ask parents throughout the world, with love, and
good leadership in the household, your children will not fall
as prey to satan.
JUNE 18, 1992 (MSG) - Mothers and fathers, how often have
I counseled you to protect your children in these days. You will
find that many of those that you entrust to teach your children
are bringing them into a world of unrealistic atheism. Already,
My child, it saddens My Heart to know that you are not, as a nation,
allowed any longer to pray in your schools. ...........And as
for your children, I say this as your God: Every parent that does
not take the responsibility of teaching and raising his children,
and giving them to others who are possessed by these demons that
are loosed now upon your earth, I say possessed, and that is only
a kind word. I could discourse with you much farther, but I'm
afraid, My child, your heart would not be able to accept this.
..........However, I say at this time that all parents will be
held responsible for the fall of their children's souls. Do not
expect them to leave your homes and to be taught in light and
truth, for the demons are raging now all about you. All hell is
opened wide now, and you know that means that the onslaught is
at hand. ..............Therefore, We ask all parents to keep a
steady hand on their children. Bar them from all the insensitive
acts being committed on the diabolical tube of satan, your television.
I ask if you cannot monitor your set, to remove it immediately
from your home, for your children will even resort to murder if
they continue to watch the programming. .......For We have great
hope that if the peoples of the world and the United States will
say the Rosary in their homes, and also to reach out to their
brothers and bring them the light in truth of the nature of God
the Father in the Trinity, that is, the Father, the Son, and the
Holy Spirit, also known as the Holy Ghost.
MANKIND: WOMEN
V O L
U M E I
FEBRUARY 28, 1971 - I refuse any soul the privilege of
being with My Mother unless properly attired. Women will not dress
as men in Her presence; nor will women condone the attire during
their earthly existence! Can you not sacrifice for Me? Better
the abuse of the flesh than the fire to the soul..........(vol
I page 24)
JULY 25, 1971 - You women who profane your bodies have
been led by satan to soul destruction. You expose your bodies
and knowing the evil that comes into the minds of the beholder.
Therefore, your sin is twofold for you have led another to fall
into sin!!! The parts that you expose shall be burned from your
limbs when I send the Ball of Redemption upon you. To remain with
Us will call for perseverance, sacrifice and prayer!! It will
not be easy! The way to Heaven has never been easy. (vol I page
31,32)
MAY 10, 1972 - The mystery in woman is her greatest asset.
Satan seeks to take away women's identity. The Holy Bible has
in prophecy; the time will become in the end that woman will seek
to be as men. They will wear his clothes and want to 'eat his
bread, (be as a man in the fields). So Our fair flowers are being
plucked from the garden on earth. The reality of disintegration
of the strong standards of morality and living with constructive
purpose are all about you. Darkness covers the earth. We carry
the Light. Light your candles with Us. Sacrifice, prayers, atonement,
works! (vol I page 52)
JULY 25, 1973 - Where is the place of the man and father?
Where has he gone from the homes? Why has woman sought to take
his place? Satan has created this delusion. The place of woman
is in the home and the rearment of the child. The man will be
the breadwinner and safeguard his home..........Women, mothers
of the world, why do you expose your bodies? Why do you create
lust in the eyes of others, and in their hearts? What example
are you as mother? Animals! Many homes now are infested with human
animals! (vol I page 118)
MARCH 24, 1974 - As a Mother, My Heart is torn, for the
example of many mothers on earth is poor. Woman who has come from
Adam would regain her glory by childbearing. This, too, she has
cast aside for the ways of darkness. No longer does she seek to
purge her soul and to enter the Kingdom of the Father. Her sins
multiply, for no longer does she not only miss the opportunity
of purging, but she has committed murder! All the evils of the
flesh. ............Women of the world reject their places as helpmates
to their husbands. What manner of creature have they become? The
Day of the Lord approaches fast upon you, for what has been foretold
is coming to pass.....St. Paul: Repeat what you hear, my child,
and shout it from the rooftops. No woman shall be on the altars
of God! Disobedience, lack of respect for the Holy Father, what
will this bring you to but your own destruction! A Church that
falls into darkness will fall.............St. Paul: Repeat what
you hear, my child, and shout it from the rooftops. No woman shall
be on the altars of God! Disobedience, lack of respect for the
Holy Father; what will this bring you to but your own destruction!
A church that falls into darkness will fall. The foundation will
rock, but the foundation shall not be destroyed. For it will be
renewed and built as it was ordained by the Father. (vol I page
177)
My child, make it known to the world that woman must return to
her place as woman, for she has been misled. Was it not woman
who fell to satan in the beginning? ..............Her disobedience
to the will of God brings much sorrow upon her and her children.
It would be better now, My children, if woman would be silent,
for she does not know the road she is traveling. It is only satan
who has set her to rebel against her destiny. (vol I page 179)
APRIL 13, 1974 - And wives, honor your husbands, and do
your role as mothers in honor to your God. We see the example
of the homes is very poor. It is not without meaning that We have
chosen these colors. Womanhood must be returned to the state in
which the Father created it. Right at this moment, a great Chastisement
is coming upon you, for you have cast aside your role as women.
This you will not do without receiving great Chastisement. There
will be division in homes unless the fathers stand forth as examples
to their sons and daughters, and the mothers return to their roles
as mothers in the light of God the Father. That is all, My child.
(vol I page 195)
JULY 15, 1974 - Women must not expose their flesh. It
is an abomination for women to speak in the House of God! I hear
a word, defilement of man, liberation? My child, what is this
liberation women ask for? Satan has created the plan for their
destruction. Take your Bible, take the Book of Life and study
it and learn! You have given off a wretched stink of the devil!
Woman, you were created by the Father as a helper for your husband!
Now you are in competition to be as your husband! All manner of
vile creatures now run upon your earth! They are now no longer
human creations of the Father; they are animals. Fornication!
Adultery! Filth! (vol I page 231)
AUGUST 14, 1974 - Women, you will not disport yourself
in nakedness in My Son's House! You will cover your heads! Not
because you come in vanity thinking that your hair is a beauty
or the crowning glory of your being! Look to your souls to be
your crowning glory! Your hair will be covered with the worms
just as your body will enter into the dust. Better that you spend
your time shining your soul than glorifying your body. .................Cover
your bodies before My Son! Do not defame and disgust Him by your
presence and your acceptance of His Divinity! Why, you are naked
like pagans! Cover your heads! You do not follow the modernism
and modes of an evil generation! No! The angels demand that all
respect be given to the Divinity of the Son of God in the Houses
throughout the world! (vol I page 243)
SEPTEMBER 28, 1974 - Since women have exchanged their roles
as women, preferring to be as men, and have abandoned their true,
true value of life; have abandoned their role as a mother to carry
the creation of their God within their wombs, they, therefore,
will also find that their husbands and sons will find rejection
of women, and men will seek lustfully pleasures with men, known,
My child, as homosexuality. And they will be given and abandoned
to their lust, until all creatures upon earth would live in fear.
Women then will find themselves turning lustful eyes to women,
lesbianism, My child. And then will set in all manners of iniquity;
murders, corruptness, idolatry, adultery; oh, My child, the evil
abounds upon earth! (vol I page 267)
NOVEMBER 1, 1974 - I ask you as your Mother, to turn back
now from the ways that offend the Father! You are re crucifying
My Son! You desecrate His Body! We do not want the women standing
upon the altars of the Houses of My Son! Why do you not listen,
My children? We gave you the plan for setting up the House of
God. My Son set the plan. He sent Paul to you with the plan. Read,
My children, the book of love and life, your Bible! You are misguided!..........Women,
you must be with your husbands as a helper. You will not meet
him on even ground, for you are destroying your image before God
and man and you have nothing to gain. ................Women, what
has become of you? You cast aside your role as a mother! You send
your husband off to consort and defile his body with another man!
Women consorting with women, shamelessly, without honor! You defile
the temples of the Holy Spirit, your bodies! You must keep your
bodies clean! They are the receptacle for the Holy Spirit! (vol
I page 287)
We hear you clamor for the ordination of women. No woman shall
stand in My House to represent Me! How dare you bring in this
heresy to My House? I shall go among you and I shall sling you
from My Temples! (vol I page 290)
DECEMBER 31, 1974 - Women shall not receive My Son dressed
as pagans! Naked, and without absolution! Many have made a fad
and a meal of My Son! They come to receive Him without penance!
What manner of abomination is this, My child! (vol I page 321)
MARCH 18, 1975 - Women must adorn themselves in modesty.
Pagan practices of diabolical music is not condoned by the Eternal
Father! Nor shall We condone dancing and all manner of worldly
entering within the Holy Houses of God!...........Women must cover
her head! It is a mark of respect required in the House of God.
This, the angels demand!............My child, make it known to
the world that women must keep her place in respect to her husband,
it was not Adam the man who fell, but he followed the fall of
Eve, his wife; for man came from God and Eve was brought forth
from man. Therefore, My child, this word I hear 'liberation' is
a deception from satan! ...........Do you not recognize, My children,
the signs of your times? Read and learn! Women will become unlike
women. They shall go forth, and seven women shall take hold of
one man and say to him: Make me as you are. I wish to eat your
bread. Know, My child, the simple lesson. That in these days of
the latter times, women shall seek to cast off their role as mother
and a woman. Women will cast it off under the direction of satan,
and murder her children! Woe to the woman who does not repent
of this vile abomination! She has walked the road to eternal damnation
and hell! Repent, O woman, or forever be lost! (vol I page 339)
Women shall not approach the Sacred Body dressed as pagans! Exposing
the temples of their spirit to shame! Cover yourselves, My children,
or you will burn! ...........I repeat, women shall dress as befits
a wife and mother! Clothing themselves with modesty and holiness.
Children will follow the example of their parents, therefore,
if your example is poor, your children will be your thorns. The
sins of the parents are surely visited upon the children. (vol
I page 340)
MARCH 22, 1975 - St. Paul: Observe. Women shall be meek
in the presence of their husbands! We hear the call of "liberation."
Whom shall woman be liberated to but satan!..............A man
as a figure of the Christ, My child, shall be the head of his
household. So it is from the Lord. ........A woman shall adorn
herself not in pearls and braided hair but in goodness and piety
and good example to her children. A woman will not expose her
body as a pagan! What manner of example has she given to her children!
Woe to the parent who brings scandal to her children!.........Women
remove your arrogance! You are searching in darkness! As a sign
of reverence, you will cover your head! It is not that I call
it custom, My children, it is that the Angels demand this!!! in
the presence of the Sacrifice, Mass! (vol I page 346)
JULY 15, 1975 St. Joseph: A woman of earth shall not cast
aside her role as mother and housekeeper. In her role as mother,
who shall be the guardian of her children's souls and a helpmate
of her husband and a guardian also of his earthly soul and the
soul eternal. By her example in her household she has the power,
as woman, for good or evil. She shall stay in her home and guide
her children. (vol I page 381)
AUGUST 21, 1975 - Women! Children! Whatever shall become
of you? The rules of discipline in the Houses of My Son have already
been given to you. Only legally ordained representatives of My
Son may receive the Holy Spirit and the Holy Spirit deems that
they shall bring the Host to the man and the woman recipient and
the children! Only in dire need of death shall a man; I say a
man, not a woman or a child; shall a man be given the power of
a legally ordained priest to bring in urgency and haste, the Host,
to the dying! (vol I page 405)
SEPTEMBER 6, 1975 - We are much distressed in Heaven to
see the leader of your land falling prey to satan. The woman shall
truly be the downfall of her husband. We have asked the man, your
leader, to discipline his wife, his spouse. However, in your world
of liberated women, it is obvious, My children, that your women
do wear pants. I shall use a comparison, My children, as many
have fallen for the modern modes. I repeat the warning from Heaven
that man shall not dress as woman and women shall not adopt the
attire of a man because the external indications, My children,
soon penetrate the heart and expels a darkness of spirit. Many
shall judge you by your attire. (vol I page 407)
It is better that young womanhood be placed under the guidance
of holy ones that to set forth into the world of satan to be destroyed!
We must, My child, build up refuge for the young. (vol I page
408)
There is no need, My child, for women to rush into the Sacred
Portals. There are enough throughout the world, men, consecrated
and chosen as Minister of the Eternal Father, of the Body and
Blood of His Son; to distribute among mankind, His sacred Body.
I have cried tears of great sorrows! I am truly the Mother of
Sorrows as I watch this constant desecration of My Son's Body!
(vol I page 409)
DECEMBER 7, 1976 - Veronica reads the following: The conduct
of women during the Holy Sacrifice of the Mass shall be one of
silence. No woman shall speak out during the Holy Sacrifice of
the Mass. Women must wear head coverings when they enter the House
of God. The House of God is a place of prayer, and not a meeting
place or dance hall. No woman shall speak from the pulpit. No
woman shall enter the ministry. (vol I page 567)
V O L
U M E I I
JULY 15, 1977 - All who have received the Holy Spirit have
consecrated hands. And I say unto you none but legally ordained
priests in My House shall bring My Body to the multitudes! No
woman shall stand in the Holy Place! No woman shall vie or compete
for ruler ship in My House. I say unto you, you must go back and
read the commandments of the Eternal Father; you must go back
and read the rules that Paul gave to you. You cast him aside and
you write another book, a bible, a tome, you write it to suit
your own basic, carnal, human nature. (vol II page 65)
APRIL 1, 1978 - Now I praise you brethren, because in all
things you are mindful of me and hold fast my precepts as I gave
them to you. But I would have you know that the head of every
man is Christ. And the head of the woman is the man, and the head
of Christ is God. Every man praying or prophesying with his head
covered disgraces his head. But every woman praying or prophesying
with her head uncovered disgraces her head, for it is the same
as if she were shaven. A man indeed ought not to cover his head
because he is the image and glory of God, but woman is the glory
of man. For man is not from woman, but woman from man, made from
man by God. For man was not created for woman but woman for man.
This is why the woman ought to have a sign of authority over her
head because of the angels. (vol II page 138)
JUNE 1, 1978 - Women of your nation and all of the nations
of the world, the Eternal Father shall send a grievous boil upon
you, for you have become unchaste, for you have become immodest,
and you have cast aside your role as a woman, as a mother, and
as a bearer of children for the Eternal Father in Heaven. ..................Woman
of the world, you have chosen to become murderers, killing your
young. You defy the Eternal Father in your quest for luxury and
pleasure. You have cast aside your role as women and have aligned
yourselves with homosexuality and lesbianism, and as such you
corrupt the young. Woe to a generation that has made sin a way
of life. (vol II page 160)
JULY 15, 1978 - My children, We ask that all women during
the Holy Sacrifice of the Mass have their heads covered, it is
demanded of all by the angels who assist My Son, who are there
at the consecration and the reception of the Eucharist. It is
not because of custom that this is asked of you, but because the
angels, who demand proper deportment during the Holy Sacrifice,
are present and watch the Eucharist. ....................My child,
you understand well why this direction is no longer accepted upon
earth. You have now a new rebellious group called ERA, equal rights
for women. O My children, what a delusion this is among you! Do
you not recognize that you will lose more that you shall ever
gain because you defy the direction of the Eternal Father. .......Paul
the Apostle wrote down the words given to him by My Son Jesus.
Adam was created in the image of God as man, and woman was given
unto him as his helper. As such, My children, man must always
be the head of the household. There shall not be strength in a
home divided. (vol II page 171)
It is a defiant act, My children, that women no longer cover their
heads at the Holy Sacrifice of the Mass. They will not obey, for
they cannot understand that man must not change the wording of
the Bible to suit mankind's instincts. No! the Hierarchy must
lead the sheep upon the road to Heaven through the plan of the
Eternal Father; and this plan has been written in His good Book,
the Bible. If you choose to strike out on your own and form a
new Bible and a new way, you are doomed to disappointment and
destruction. And worst of all, it will be soul destruction! (vol
II page 171,172)
JUNE 2, 1979 - Mothers and women of the world, you must
no longer offend your God. You must return your country and the
world to a disciplined life of modesty in the hearts of women,
chastity, and a firm family foundation among mankind. Many of
you do not please the Eternal Father, and you have pierced My
Mother's Heart with your sins. The sins of the flesh shall have
many cast into hell............Men shall not consort with men,
women shall not consort with women, for it is an abomination in
the eyes of all Heaven. The Eternal Father will destroy you for
this! As it was in the time of Sodom and Gomorrah, so shall it
be upon the cities. Your body is the temple of the Holy Ghost,
and you must not defile it, for you seek perversion and you defame
your human nature..............And I repeat again; all who become
part of or condone homosexuality shall be destroyed. All who become
part of or condone abortion, the murder of the young, shall be
destroyed! All who seek to cast out the discipline given by the
Eternal Father in the Commandments, the Ten Commandments from
your God, they too, shall be destroyed! All women who disport
their bodies in nakedness, the flesh shall burn! (vol II page
222)
OCTOBER 2, 1979 - St. Theresa: However, in your world now
of confusion, this did not mean we shall join in the revolt of
the women against the plan of God. You must tell all of the sisters
in the convents, and all the women upon earth, that the Eternal
Father has given them their role as children of God. They must
not revolt against Him and be liberated from the role, for they
have been then deluded by Lucifer. (vol II page 254)
M E S
S A G E S
OCTOBER 2, 1987 (MSG) - I ask this of you as your God:
In the Holy Sacrifice that I left with you. I did not ask for
women to be upon the altar, nor try to be a high priestess. They
carry this on in the churches of satan; therefore, it shall not
be carried on in My Church............When I had the Last Supper
with the Apostles, My Mother was not present. If I had it in My
power from the Eternal Father to make a priestess, I would surely
have chosen My Mother; but, no, there were no women present at
the first Dedication.
OCTOBER 1, 1988 (MSG) - We have other things to discuss,
My child, before the evening is over. I want the world to know
now that We will no longer tolerate the murders of the unborn.
The Eternal Father finds that children He had great plans for
to bring the true Faith to the world and to save His Son's Church,
they have been murdered in the womb. Satan is the father of all
liars, and many reasons are given for abortion. And even now in
Our convents, they are going about consoling women who are about
to have abortions; whereas they do not tell them the truth that
they are murderers, and they are mothers who will murder their
own children. ...........The Eternal Father set up women not to
be priests and not to be murderers, but to be with the head of
the household a guiding light for their children. Each child to
the Eternal Father is a pure blessing upon mankind, but all this
has been lost in the name of modernism. Immodesty reigns in your
country. There are many reasons why the Eternal Father feels that
it is not time to do something about all of these abnormalities.
MARRIAGE
DECEMBER 31, 1970 - How sad to see many dying in the pursuit
of revelry and worldly body pleasures! Drunkenness has always
been an abomination in the eyes of the Heavenly Father, and time
will never distort the Word of God! Time and custom never change
in the Eyes of the Father. I would have you know of all the abominations
taking place. We see consorts in sin destroying the sacredness
of the marriage bond with drink and mixed brain medication! What
horror....What constructive pursuit is there that seeks to destroy
the total personality of man, reducing him to the animal level
in emotions and actions!!! The heavy Hand of God will not fall
lightly on these offenders! Always remember, excesses weaken the
soul. Gluttons of worldly pleasures! Can you not see the sorrows,
the miseries of starving nations and the souls leaving the earth
untimely? Is this not time for full prayer? Have you so little
faith that you believe that your time is not limited? Cast not
your lot with satan now, for in His Mercy, Our Lord, the Eternal
Father must often look the other way when He calls many souls
into judgment! (vol I page 21)
OCTOBER 2, 1973 - Jesus wants you to know that many marriages
are not approved of by Heaven. The example within the homes have
led many children onto the road to hell. There will be no rationalization
of adultery. There will be no rationalization of the breaking
up of the home in divorce. Marriages, consummated and blessed
by God the Father, shall not be dissolved by the whims of man.
Know ye now that satan rules throughout your world for a short
time. He has the power to turn the husband against his spouse,
and the wife against her husband. Know you now that you cannot
escape the fires of hell if you dissolve a marriage blessed by
God the Father. It is permanent, and in the eyes of God, permanent
unto death. (vol I page 138)
DECEMBER 28, 1974 - The act of marriage blessed by the
Father must not be dissolved to suit mankind in his carnal natures
and loss of the knowledge of God. What God has joined together,
no man shall place asunder. (vol I page 315)
AUGUST 21, 1975 - The sacredness of marriage and the married
life of man and woman must not be destroyed by debased sensuality.
It is a private consummation between man and woman in the family.
It is not an object of derisive laughter and scornful jokes, My
children. Your actions are observed by the Eternal Father who
looks into your hearts. Pure thoughts, pure minds, pure spirits!
What goes into the heart will come out. The eyes are the mirror
of the soul; therefore, you must cast your eyes on objects of
godly nature, not soul corrupters. Remove these from your homes,
or one day you will weep bitter tears for your children, but too
late, too late! (vol I page 405)
SEPTEMBER 13, 1975 - All manner of fornication's and abominations
are being committed by mankind! The sanctity of the marriage vows
has been dulled and cast aside! You are fornicating like animals!!!
(vol I page 413)
MAY 15, 1976 - My child, you have been much concerned about
the dissolvement of many marriages now in your country. It is
truly a sad happening among mankind, My child, for it is the hand
of satan reaching in and capturing the souls of many. What God
has joined together in holy Matrimony, let no man place asunder.
The liberal attitudes now prevalent in My Son's House bring many
tears to Our hearts, for they will lead many souls onto the road
to hell. (vol I page 487)
DECEMBER 28, 1976 - Your world your countries have given
themselves to debasement and debauchery. There is eating and drinking,
and marrying, and giving into marriage and many marriages are
not sacred. Many marriages are frowned upon by your God. (vol
I page 574)
NOVEMBER 19, 1977 - I watch My children running to and
fro, marrying and giving in marriage, neither caring nor thinking
of what lies ahead, never preparing for their entrance into Heaven.
They push aside the knowledge of immortality and substitute all
manner of immorality and sin. (vol II page 101)
JUNE 10, 1978 - My children, you will pray for your brothers
and sisters. The Message from Heaven is going now throughout the
world. The time is growing shorter. Protect your children. Wear
your sacramentals, and protect your marriages, that they remain
holy. Many marriages have now become debased and defiled. (vol
II page 164)
NOVEMBER 1, 1985 (MSG) - Fornication shall never be accepted.
There is no excuse for fornication. If you cannot remain celibate,
better then that you must then be married. It is better, My child
and My children, to be married than to burn in hell.
JUNE 6, 1987 (MSG) - My child, there is also one thing
I wish to discuss with you for the world, for all of the world's
children to know, how Heaven feels about their diabolical search
for life in a test tube. Yes, My child, I know this shocks you,
but you are fully aware of what is going on. Your news medias
seem to enjoy putting these evils before your eyes and your ears
and your readings. Yes, We frown upon surrogate mothers. We shall
not tolerate the making of children from one to the other.................The
sacrament of Marriage was given for the union of man and woman
in love and godliness. There is nothing godly about a man who
sets himself up to play God and starts revolving innocent, I prefer
to call My children innocent, because in that way I do not refuse
them even penance for their sins, but they must know that you
cannot bring life in a test tube. This will not be accepted by
Heaven.................These children are not conceived by the
Holy Ghost, the spirit within them at the moment of conception,
because their conception is from a test tube, and an instrument
of so-called doctor upon earth. He is a doctor, not of divinity
but of sin.
JUNE 18, 1987 (MSG) - All the holiness of Marriage has
been cast aside. We see now children growing up into sin, as they
go forth into life unprepared by their parents.
MARRIAGE: ANNULMENTS
MAY 15, 1976 - My child, you have been much concerned about
the dissolvement of many marriages now in your country. It is
truly a sad happening among mankind, My child, for it is the hand
of satan reaching in and capturing the souls of many. What God
has joined together in holy Matrimony, let no man place asunder.
The liberal attitudes now prevalent in My Son's House bring many
tears to Our hearts, for they will lead many souls onto the road
to hell. (vol I page 487)
MAY 3, 1978 - The Eternal Father has given mankind a set
of rules, and in discipline they must be obeyed. It behooves Me
to say that My heart is torn by the actions, the despicable actions,
of My clergy. I unite, as your God, man and woman into the holy
state of matrimony. And what I have bound together no man must
place asunder. And what do I see but broken homes, marriages dissolved
through annulments! It has scandalized your nation, and it is
scandalizing the world. Woe to the teachers and leaders who scandalize
the sheep! (vol II page 143)
SEPTEMBER 27, 1986 (MSG) - Each and every soul shall be
held accountable for his soul and the souls of those about him.
Families are disintegrating. I must tell you now, My children,
the family must be returned to the holy state it was constructed
for. We shall never approve nor accept marriage and cohabitation
without marriage. We shall not accept the annulments that are
being given now to so many without due cause.
MARRIAGE: COMMON-LAW
NOVEMBER 1, 1985 (MSG) - O My child and My children, never have We seen from the beginning of time a world in such chaos. And, also, I shall not speak with words that affright your heart, My child, but I wish it known that this new modern rule of what they call "marriage without marriage," which means living in "common-law," I understand, My children, shall not be tolerated in Heaven. It was never the plan of the Eternal Father that man and woman shall live as animals...
Fornication shall never be accepted. There is no excuse for fornication.
If you cannot remain celibate, better then that you must then
be married. It is better, My child and My children, to be married
than to burn in hell.
MAY 17, 1986 (MSG) - This I can tell you, because We are
much grieved as We look into the hearts of the mothers and fathers
throughout the world, not many are in the light. Families are
disintegrating; the state of marriage is becoming nullified. Now
it is fashionable in the United States, and many nations of the
world, to discard the Sacrament of Marriage and to live together
in sin. This, My child and My children, cannot be tolerated. Man
must come back to the laws of His God, or he will be destroyed.
SEPTEMBER 27, 1986 (MSG) - Each and every soul shall be
held accountable for his soul and the souls of those about him.
Families are disintegrating. I must tell you now, My children,
the family must be returned to the holy state it was constructed
for. We shall never approve nor accept marriage and cohabitation
without marriage. We shall not accept the annulments that are
being given now to so many without cause.
JUNE 6, 1987 (MSG) - It is the place and the will of the
Eternal Father that the home shall be the safeguard for the children's
souls, the mother, the father. But what can We expect, My children,
when even the state of marriage, the sacrament of Marriage, is
being destroyed slowly? We know all that is going on upon earth,
living together without union under God. No, My children, that
shall also be destroyed in time; if not by sickness and death
of the body, it will also be by sickness and death of the soul.
MARTYRDOM
AUGUST 5, 1970 - I weep for the murder of the holy innocents.
Man has discovered sophisticated sin governed by body pleasures.
Only satan could fashion such diabolical destruction. I wander
the earth in tears. My children have forgotten Us. So many will
be lost. Why won't you listen to Me? I plead with you as your
Mother. Listen to Me before it is too late. The darkness grows
deeper. So many souls will be lost. So many will be martyred.
(vol I page 12)
AUGUST 21, 1970 - Stand beside My Vicar. There will be
many martyrs in the conflagration. Do not abandon the Holy Father
for he is your Father on earth. Do not abandon My Son's gift to
you in Holy Church, for it is Our home on earth, your Heavenly
habitat, sheltering you from the Dark Knights (satan's henchmen),
wandering about to drag you to the bottomless pit! Find shelter
in Jesus' arms. Remain close to Him! (vol I page 13)
JULY 25, 1971 - To remain with Us will call for perseverance,
sacrifice and prayer!! It will not be easy! The way to Heaven
has never been easy. More will find themselves martyrs if the
darkness grows deeper. You will come to Us as Martyrs.....have
given My Mother - I will not keep My Hand from giving you the
destruction you so highly deserve. I have watched as My Mother
sheds tears for those who deserve no pity. (vol I page 31,32)
AUGUST 21, 1971 - When a soul falls, it is only because
there are too few prayers offered for them, too few who cared
enough. There will be much suffering, so many martyrs in the conflagration
ahead, but remember, My children, Life will go on for there is
life forever for those who carry the Light; you just pass over,
My children, into the Kingdom. (vol I page 33)
SEPTEMBER 28, 1971 - My child, you will make My message
known to the world. We implore all true hearts to spread My message.
My words will be few, the darkness is deeper. I have just come
through the shadows. I have with Me, My child, three guardian
(angels) of My Son's House (Church). He (anti-Christ) the evil
one will not destroy My Son's House. Yes, there will be many martyrs
in the days ahead. (vol I page 36)
DECEMBER 31, 1971 - My children, keep it in your heart
that one day My Son will return. He will set right the evil that
covers the earth, but many must suffer as victims for Love, to
become martyrs before that great day. Should you become engrossed
in all worldly pursuits and desire for all of the earth world,
you will become blinded. (vol I page 41)
APRIL 10, 1972 - Satan has entered upon your hearts well;
you accept him of free will (conscience). All who will stand to
defend My Son in these trials, many will be martyred. Your government,
your schools, and now My Son's house (Church) has been entered.
Many have sold their souls to get to the head. The abyss, the
deep pit, is filling fast! (vol I page 50)
JULY 15, 1972 - There is great darkness in My Son's House
(Church); many have sold their souls to reach the head. Your Vicar
will soon join the increasing list of martyred. (vol I page 56)
AUGUST 1972 - Saint Paul and the Holy Bible prove.....that
women must wear a head covering at Holy Service (Mass), and while
praying. The angels who assist at the divine Service are interested
in having all done properly........Epistle of St. Paul to the
Corinthians, Chapter 11:10 - Have you chosen to ignore the teachings
of the fathers of the Church; the chosen ones of God? St. Peter,
the first Pope? St Paul, St. Matthew, St. Mark, St. Luke, St.
John, St James..... The Holy Bible?
St. Paul's Epistle to Timothy, Chapter 2:9-12: I wish women to
be decently dressed, adorning themselves with modesty and dignity,
not with braided hair or gold or pearls or expensive clothing
(or nakedness) but with good works such as becomes women professing
Godliness, etc.......You come to Church to profess Godliness,
to honor God, but dress and act as pagans now..........Man calls
down a heavy punishment from God.........Eve tempted Adam to sin.
Woman was to be saved by her role as a child-bearing mother and
companion of her spouse (husband), but she was to continue in
faith and love and holiness with modesty..........Women were not
to exercise authority over men. Now they seek to 'wear the pants'.
They have chosen to cast aside their place as women, even rejecting
the natural plan of childbearing...........In the end days seven
women will take hold of one man and say, 'I want to eat your bread.'
(Be as you are) Deuteronomy. In other words, seven lusting after
another; sexually promiscuous, and demanding equal rights to their
eventual identity destruction! ..........Men lust after men; women
lust after women; divorce rate: 1 out of 2 marriages; sterilization's;
abortions; murder! ........God will soon punish with a heavy hand.
(vol I page 58)
AUGUST 5, 1972 - Many will have to sacrifice their human
bodies in the turmoil, but think, My children, how many glorious
souls there will be to count, when the final count is made! (vol
I page 59)
NOVEMBER 1, 1972 - There is coming a general mobilization
of forces in Heaven. The saints who have kept their robes clean
upon earth shall enter into the spotless glory of eternal salvation.
As We go into deep battle with the agents of Lucifer many will
accept martyrdom. (vol I page 70)
FEBRUARY 1, 1973 - Before this battle is over, many who
remain to stand forth to protect the honor of My Son will be subject
to torments from their own. Many martyrs will enter into the Kingdom.
The persecution within the House of God will be heavy. (vol I
page 80)
MARCH 18, 1973 - There is a light, a great light upon earth.
All shall bask in this light as they fight the great battle. Those
who are in the light will find themselves scourged; those who
are in the light will walk the road of My Son. They will be crucified
by their own. (vol I page 86)
MARCH 24, 1973 - You will all go through a heavy crucifixion.
Only in this way will you be able to follow My Son into the Kingdom.
Before the arrival of My Son, many will have weakened and chosen
the easy way. This gives Us great sorrow in the knowledge of what
is to come. However you have been made knowledgeable in advance
of what lies ahead. Therefore, when you fall, you will have made
your own decision. (vol I page 88)
Many will be chosen by the Father to remain in martyrdom, awaiting
the coming of My Son. (vol I page 89)
MARCH 18, 1974 - Yes, My child, there are dark days ahead,
for the agents of hell roam throughout My Son's Houses. Many will
sell their souls to get to the head. However, all who persevere
through these days of terrible tribulation, will be saved. There
will be many martyrs unto the day of the great abomination. (vol
I page 170)
APRIL 13, 1974 - The road to martyrdom, My child, is not
one that would be accepted in your human nature. However, all
who enter the Kingdom of the Father must carry the Cross. Know,
My child, that now, all are being separated. Many are already
marked with the sign of the beast or the mark of the Cross. In
your perception, you will be given this insight to recognize the
enemies of your God. ...........Veronica: Now up above in the
sky, I see letters forming D E A T H. death to the body. Now I
see over to the right, many crosses, many, many crosses. Standing
before these crosses are figures of people but they have on long
white gowns, they don't look unhappy, they have on long white
gowns. I see hundreds of them. Now Our Lady is coming forward.
........You are looking, My child, upon the many martyrs who will
come from your earth before this battle has ended. The battle
that rages now, My child, upon earth, is not one of the body but
of the spirits. The spirits of wickedness and darkness now fight
the light. When the peak of iniquity has gained its fullness,
know that the end is at hand. The Father will allow this as a
Chastisement to His children. (vol I page 193)
JUNE 15, 1974 - Yes, My child, much blood will be shed
upon the earth. Many will be martyred for the cause of My Son
before this battle is over. (vol I page 217)
SEPTEMBER 13, 1974 - St. Michael: The Saints and those
who were washed clean by the blood of martyrdom, they join all
in Heaven crying for vengeance against deceitful mankind and the
abominations that offend the Eternal Father, abominations in the
House of God! (vol I page 260)
OCTOBER 2, 1974 - All who continue in the battle ahead
must accept martyrdom. It does not, My child, necessarily mean
death of your body, but it will mean persecution. Stand fast in
the faith. Keep the faith in the hearts of those you love. Extend
your charity of heart to all of your brothers and sisters throughout
the world. Pray a constant vigilance of prayer. (vol I page 275)
DECEMBER 31, 1974 - Sin, the most of abominable of sins,
has become a way of life with your country, and many countries
of your world. It is for this reason that mankind, this generation
that has become perverse, will have visited upon it trials, such
as have never been seen since the beginning of creation! It is
in this manner that the sheep shall be separated from the goats.
Persevere, My children, in the days ahead. Many shall be martyred
for the Kingdom of God. (vol I page 321)
FEBRUARY 10, 1975 - Before the world comes to its final
curtain, My child, there will be many who will wear the robes
of martyrdom. (vol I page 337)
AUGUST 14, 1975 - You have been given a time to change.
The time is running out! Those who are of well spirit will have
nothing to fear, My child. For they will go through this crucible
of suffering with more hope and courage; knowing that the eventual
victory is over the veil with the Eternal Father. There will be
many martyrs in the conflagration that lies ahead! It will truly
be the cross! (vol I page 400)
NOVEMBER 1, 1975 - Veronica: Now behind Her there appears
to be millions of little stars crystal diamond-like figures and
they are growing larger and they are coming back from the sky,
coming forward they are almost like lights now of circular lights.
Oh, now in between these stars, I see figures of many people,
they are dressed in long white garments. Oh! I don't recognize
many of them at this time but I know they are saints. The light
is very brilliant. I can't see faces, but their figures are very,
very plain and visible. Their feet are bare; everyone of them
has nothing but a white gown covering down to their elbows. Now
on their heads I can see now their heads, they are wearing green
wreaths; they are like crowns. Our Lady now is touching Her lips
with Her first finger: My child, you are looking upon the sea
of martyrs. All whom you observe now have been tested and found
true upon earth. All who wish to join them in their future lives
must use their example of piety. (vol I page 432)
NOVEMBER 20, 1975 - Many martyrs, My child, shall come
in the days ahead, and defenders of the Faith. Carry your crosses,
My children, for those who will be saved shall be in the few.
(vol I page 440)
DECEMBER 6, 1975 - There will be many saints coming out
of the great Tribulation. They will be called the latter-day saints,
My children. There are crowns of joy, stars and lights awaiting
many who will come over the veil as martyrs. (vol I page 450)
DECEMBER 27, 1975 - The Blood of the Son of Man shall not
be shed again for an unrepentant generation. Man shall shed his
blood and be slain for the Lamb. Many martyrs shall rise in the
conflagration. Woe to the inhabitants of the earth! Woe to mankind
that has allowed sin to become a way of life! (vol I page 459)
JANUARY 3, 1976 - I cannot promise in that conflagration
that some shall not suffer, that good shall die with the evil
anew. But know that no death upon earth shall go by without a
just reward when this death is in martyrdom. (vol I page 470)
MAY 26, 1976 - There is now a battle upon earth, the battle
spoken of by your prophets in days gone by. You are living those
days now. Many saints shall rise from this battle. Many shall
be martyred, but then peace shall be restored to mankind. This
peace promised by My Mother has now been set ahead, for man did
not listen then, as he is not listening now, and you must then
accept the Chastisement as deemed necessary to mankind by the
Eternal Father. (vol I page 492)
JUNE 5, 1976 - Many martyrs, many saints shall come after
the battle. Many martyrs shall come from out of the battle. Pick
up your cross, My children, and carry it, for no man is above
his Master. As they persecuted My Son, so will they persecute
you who follow Him. (vol I page 497)
AUGUST 14, 1976 - My children, My Mother has directed you
well. Before the trials are finished upon your earth, before I
return to you in triumph with all the personages of Heaven, your
earth will be cleansed with great suffering. Many martyrs shall
come out of the conflagration. (vol I page 523)
SEPTEMBER 7, 1976 - Do not discard your sacramentals as
being outdated or outmoded. Know the insidious plan of satan to
remove your armor from you so that you will not have the necessary
protection for your spirit, your soul, My children. The world
will look upon you and call you with laughter and mockery, fanatics.
The world will point their fingers at you and say that you are
deranged. But know, My children, that I, too, knew the mockery
of My own. But know that the greatest glory of all is a living
martyrdom for your God, for great will be your glory in Heaven.
(vol I page 532)
SEPTEMBER 14, 1976 - My child, you are observing many who
shall wear the white robes in Heaven. Many martyrs shall be made,
My child, in the days ahead. Many shall gain their crowns through
suffering. It is truly the way of the cross, My child, to Heaven.
Do not let a moment go by, My child, without using, without putting
your suffering to good cause. (vol I page 534)
AUGUST 14, 1978 - My children, Our Vicar, your Holy Father
upon earth, was sacrificed for you. I cannot describe to you with
your limited knowledge of the supernatural, the manner of his
sacrifice. Be it enough that I say unto you that in the days ahead
there will be many martyrs, there will be many latter-day saints
coming out of the conflagration. (vol II page 181)
DECEMBER 20, 1978 - My children, are there so few who will
suffer for the Faith? Are My children lost to the need for suffering
and martyrdom for the Faith? Do you not understand, My children,
that martyrdom means immediate entrance into Heaven. Is this not
worth fighting for? (vol II page 200)
DECEMBER 7, 1978 - Our hearts are torn because many have
been misled. We ask a great burden for many to accept, a burden
of perseverance. And this is a burden when the opposition is great,
a burden filled with eventual graces to accept martyrdom upon
earth. (vol II page 211)
MAY 30, 1981 - How long, the voices of those who are persecuted
and must die, are saying, the voices rise to Heaven, join with
the saints: How long, O Lord, shall you continue to find excuses
upon excuses as these generations of degenerates have progressed
into a spiritual darkness and depravity far worse that even during
the time of Noe or Lot? How long, O Lord, shall many more martyrs
shed their blood? (vol II page 283)
MAY 21, 1983 - We will go back, My child, in history, a
short history, and remember well what had happened in Rome to
John, Pope John whose reign lasted 33 days. O My child, it is
history now, but it is placed in the book that lists the disasters
to mankind. He received the horror and martyrdom by drinking from
a glass. It was a champagne glass given to him by a now deceased
member of the clergy and the secretariat of the state. (vol II
page 385)
MARY: MOTHER OF GOD/IMMACULATE HEART
V O L
U M E I
JUNE 18, 1970 - Everyone has to care. Not enough who care.
So many will be lost. I love you, My children. I love you, My
children! I will come soon. ...........These are the pearls of
Heaven, (The Rosary). Pearls of prayer. These are My pearls of
prayer to Heaven. I am your Mother of Love. Blessed is he who
extends his love to his brothers and gives his heart to Me. I
love you all, My children, but you must pray more. I love you
all, My children, My arms are filled with roses. (vol I page 8)
JULY 1, 1970 - The children are the innocent victims, misguided
by the dedicated who feed half-truths and black abominations to
starve young souls! Woe to defiled man! Why do you deny My angels?
The beauties of Heaven are in their arms. Remember, My children,
Heaven and earth will pass away, all will be as white, but I hold
the Key to the Kingdom given by My Son. No one will come to the
Father but through My Son. Stay under My mantle, My children,
and you will find peace. Reject Me or My Son, and the end of life
as you know it will be hastened. ..........I am the advocate of
peace, the Mediatrix between God and man, abundant with graces
for the asking. I am now the Guardian of the Cross. I stand beneath
the Cross. No soiled hands can touch My Son's Body. Only God can
purify the hands. (Consecrated hands) (vol I page 10)
AUGUST 5, 1970 -I have wandered far to try to save you
but you choose to close your ears to My pleas. I have come to
warn you, to save you. I wish to place My Mantle over all My children
so that not one will be lost. The hand of the Father grows impatient.
I hold back the darkness but His hand grows heavy. (vol I page
12)
AUGUST 14, 1970 - But My Immaculate Heart will triumph
over all evil. The present strife is but a symptom of the underlying
sickness, the loss of soul. Prayer is your beacon in the dark
world. (vol I page 13)
AUGUST 21, 1970 - Pray, pray, My children. Recover all
souls from Purgatory. Physical death is but the beginning of spiritual
life. I am the Mother of the world, come to Me and I will comfort
you. (vol I page 13)
SEPTEMBER 7, 1970 - Remember, My children, Heaven and earth
will pass away, all will be as white, but I hold the key to the
Kingdom, given by My Son. No one will come to the Father but through
My Son, and the end of life as you know it will be hastened! I
am the Advocate of Peace, the Mediatrix between God and man, abundant
with graces for the asking. I am now the guardian of the cross,
I stand beneath the cross, I shed My Blood beneath the cross.
No soiled hands can touch My Son's Body, only God can purify the
hands (consecrated hands). (vol I page 157)
SEPTEMBER 14, 1970 - I offer you salvation, My children,
remain with Me under My Mantle. Jesus is sad. Satan attacks Our
Hearts by destroying Our children. This is the beginning of sorrows.
Pray! Pray! to strengthen the convents and seminaries from the
attacks from within. (vol I page 14)
DECEMBER 7, 1970 - Why do they now deny Me, My children?
Why do they place on Me a cloak of impurity? What sorrow anew
to a Son's Heart to see his Mother defamed? (vol I page 18)
DECEMBER 26, 1970 - My voice grows weak, cries but grows
weak. How long must I shed My tears for an uncaring world? How
long must I care for a world who cares for the things of satan?
Every person will fear, and the good will suffer, for they will
fear the damnation ahead for those who chose to lose the Way.
Repent now! While there is time! Make sacrifices and reparation
for His abused heart which is already too much shattered by the
sins of an uncaring world. The choice has always been yours to
make. The kingdom of satan or the Kingdom of My Son! We want you
with Us. Turn not from Our pleas into the path of satan, for he
is waiting to gather you into his kingdom of fires. (vol I page
20)
FEBRUARY 11, 1971 - Our arms send forth a shower of Blessings
upon you all at this moment of a great joy to My Heart, the reception
of the Medal of Our Lady of the Roses. I thank you, My children,
for there are many surprises in store for you, that We give with
glad hearts, in these dark days. You see, My children, We will
show this man of perdition where the true power of God lies, for
eventually, My children, I will crush him through the Power of
the Eternal Father. (vol I page 23,24)
I will continue with My Son to guide you in these dark days, My
children. We shower all blessings of Heaven upon you, so have
confidence and remember to keep your Rosary with you always! Keep
it about your neck if possible, for that moment will come when
you will need it! ( vol I page 24)
MARCH 24, 1971 - There can be ultimate joy when we go beyond
the dark days ahead for My Immaculate Heart will triumph over
the darkness. .............It surely rains teardrops from Heaven!
Remember, My children, I am your Mother! I carry the Light! Tonight
a star has fallen from the sky! Two more will fall before the
Great Darkness! Fatima ....1917 America ...1971. (vol I page
25)
APRIL 3, 1971 - I am also a Mother! I am the Mother of
the World!, and I suffer the heartache of My Son, as a Mother.
I too, can no longer stand the swords in My Heart. Therefore,
We, too in Heaven, must bow to the Will of the Father, and His
Will, Will be done!! (vol I page 26)
JULY 1, 1971 -See My eyes so swollen from the tears I have
shed because of the offenses to My Son. But in all the sadness
of My heart I will smile for you, My children, won't you smile
for Me in the dark days ahead, with confidence of love? Yes, I
am truly the Mediatrix of Peace, the Mediatrix between God and
Man, I have been given the Light by My Son to hold back the darkness,
but this will all be on your decision for you must listen to Our
direction. (vol I page 30)
JULY 25, 1971 - I have watched as they defamed Her Name,
Her Body, Her Spirit. Shall you watch as I destroy those who have
created this monstrosity against My Mother? (vol I page 32)
AUGUST 5, 1971 - Your country has been given many benefits
and as such was to be a shining star of My Son. But satan knew
the devious plan ahead to destroy your country. Yes, he seeks
to capture the souls of all of Our children, but, with My Immaculate
Heart, there is no fear for those who stay under My Mantle for
I will protect those who come to Me and ask with love. I beg you,
My children, I give you My Heart, please come to Us, do not let
Us lose Our children to satan. (vol I page 32)
AUGUST 15, 1971 - The Chastisement will be from your God.
Do not be misled by those who defame the habits! Do not be led
like sheep to the slaughter. My Mother carries the Light in the
darkness, the spiritual darkness that now engulfs you all. (vol
I page 33)
AUGUST 21, 1971 - My Immaculate Heart will be your shield
in the dark days ahead. This disaster is the satanic work of Our
adversary, who will be crushed in Our eventual triumph. (vol I
page 34)
SEPTEMBER 7, 1971 - I am the Queen of the Universe, the
Mediatrix of all Graces, but first and above all I am your Mother!
I have come to warn you to protect you for many will be lost to
Us. You all in the final decision, will have made your own choice.
I bless you all, My children, with a shower of graces from Heaven.
Come to Me at this hallowed place. Be with Me in spirit. Save
America the Rosary way, a constant vigil of prayer! (vol I page
35)
FEBRUARY 1, 1972 - I am wandering the earth, coming to
many places. My arms are heavy with graces! As numerous as the
petals of the roses! Grace for all who ask! I am the Mother of
the earth and will be with you until My Son returns with Me to
stand with Us in victory. ......The war is on! I will be with
you, here on all feast days and ever, and will disperse many graces
on these hallowed grounds. Let Me nourish you with graces in
the dark days ahead. Always beside you is the evil one, the dark
man of sin, pray much that you will not fall into permissive interpretations
of law and conduct. Humanism, Modernism, Paganism. Many are selling
their souls to get to the head and consorting with devils! Woe
to evil man! Recognize, recognize the plan of satan to seduce
you. (vol I page 44)
APRIL 1, 1972 - I will be with you always in the day ahead.
And as I promised, My child, I will be here to guide you all on
the Eve of all Feast days. Many blessings of cures and conversions
will come from My hallowed grounds. There is a plan in Heaven
for every life placed upon earth by the Eternal Father. As such,
each soul is precious to Him! (vol I page 49)
APRIL 10, 1972 - You have been given a choice. My Mother
has come to you with a heavy heart. She will remain with you on
Her knees! She has promised to cover you all with Her Mantle.
Flee not from Our protection. .............Please, My children,
gather about Me now. Let Me bestow upon you all graces necessary
in the trying days ahead. I want you all to carry forth My plan
for your salvation; a string of Rosaries, from one end of your
country to the other; you will all, in these trials win your crowns!
Do not be misled to leave the narrow path to the Kingdom, when
you are place under trial. (vol I page 51)
MAY 30, 1972 - I promise, as the Mother of Jesus, not to
abandon you; I will not abandon you; and I shall be with you for
your entrance into the Kingdom. Wear your armor! The medals, the
scapulars, for many will flee with what is on their body; you
will need them all. (vol I page 52)
AUGUST 14, 1972 - Our Lady appeared accompanied by what
appeared to be hundreds of angels dressed in pastel garbs of brilliant
beauty. As Our Lady came forward the voices of the angels sang
out: Hail, Holy Queen, mightiest through the nations! Hail, Holy
Queen, the Light of the World, Who shall stand upon the world
and crush the head of satan...........When My Son ascended to
the Father I spent many years spreading His word, I know the frailties
of human nature. I know the heartbreak, the suffering, for I spent
many years on earth. Therefore, I always beg for mercy, My children,
to the Father, for My errant children on earth. That is why I
have been placed here as Mediatrix between God and man. My Son
has deemed this necessary. Many places have now been closed to
Me. I have expected this for some time, My children. But the work
for the Father will continue, as long as there is the light in
the world. I ask all who are placing their souls in the keeping
of My Son, to light their candles with Me, and search throughout
the dark world for their brothers and sisters. In Heaven there
will no class distinction; there will be no color distinction,
and there will be no rank distinction! You will only enter the
Kingdom on the merit of your spirit. (vol I page 61)
NOVEMBER 20, 1972 - I am the Queen of Heaven, Mother of
Earth, Mediatrix of all Graces. I come to you with Graces in abundance.
Graces for the asking. I will dispense to all those who join Me
in rescuing their brothers; many graces, manifestations, by means
of conversion and cure. I place upon these consecrated and sacred
grounds the graces to rescue souls in these dark days. (vol I
page 71)
DECEMBER 30, 1972 - My Mother has come as a Mediatrix to
earth. I have offered Her this opportunity to save the children
of earth. Listen to Her words of caution and direction, and you
will be saved. I extend to My children My Heart. The Father promises
all salvation if you will just follow His direction. (vol I page
74)
DECEMBER 31, 1972 - For your mission on earth, My child,
it is necessary that the Father endow you with knowledge. You
have stated, I understand, that you have found difference in seeing
My Son and I, and viewing all the personages of Heaven. I appear
to you, My child, in solid form as does My Son. Because My Son
ascended (in Body) and I was assumed (in Body) into Heaven. In
Our Body state. But others appear different to you, My child,
in their form, because they come in their soul, the spirit state.
That is the way they were taken to Heaven, through human means
through the veil. ................My Son, in the Father, took
Me into the realm of the Kingdom when My work was finished upon
earth. I rose by the Power of God into the Kingdom. My life upon
earth was lived for the Father, though I lived a life with the
knowledge of the human race. That is why My Son allowed Me to
champion your cause, My children! As I stated before that Our
children on earth are Our champions! Against the adversary, the
man of sin! I love you all, My children, and I will guide you
through the tribulation. I suffer, as a Mother will suffer, from
the loss of each child. (vol I page 75)
MARCH 18, 1973 - I stand upon the head of the serpent.
My heel will crush him, but not until man and the world have
been cleansed.............I want it known at this time
that I dwelt upon earth in human form, but so placed by the Father
in His plans from time and eternity. I came upon earth in virginity,
and I left earth in virginity. My Life upon earth was planned
far in advance of My coming. I was but an instrument of the Father
in His plan for the salvation and redemption of mankind.
(vol I page 86)
MARCH 24, 1973 - My Mother has been sent to you as a Mediatrix
between the Father and man. She has placed Herself in sacrifice
for lost souls. ........I have watched as you have degraded Her.
You will know now that My Mother will crush the prince of darkness,
and he will lie before Her, chained by Michael, and cast into
the pit. He rages now upon your world, knowing that his time grows
short. ...............Come to Me all mothers who weep for their
children. Come to Me and I will solace you. Understanding pours
forth from My Mother's Heart. Come, and I will place My mantle
about you, and you will find great comfort with Me. (vol I page
89)
AUGUST 5, 1973 - It is only, My children, through the mercy
of the Father that I be allowed to come to you as a Mediatrix
between God and man, to warn you, to prepare you for what lies
ahead. Your future now has been written in Heaven. .............
One day of your earthly week time will be given to the Father
in prayer and meditation. It is the day of the Lord. Know now
that this is but a small penance and sacrifice for what lies ahead.
I promise all who follow My direction to be protected during these
days, as I shelter them beneath My blue mantle. (vol I page 120)
AUGUST 14, 1973 - Full dedication will be made to the Sacred
Heart of My Son and the Immaculate Heart endowed to Me by the
Father. I place My blue mantle of protection over all My children
who come to Me. I have come here, and I will remain here upon
these sacred grounds and upon many sacred grounds throughout the
world until the final victory. (vol I page 123)
SEPTEMBER 7, 1973 - My children, I have no need for a repetition
of My words. I have prepared you for what lies ahead. Now you
will act upon My direction and you will be saved. Should you cast
aside My many warnings and prophecy to you, you will suffer the
consequences. Do not take the words given to you idly, in the
past, for We have prepared you for your future, which is now.
(vol I page 129)
JUNE 13, 1973 - Many graces, many manifestations will be
given to those who have assembled here on the grounds chosen by
the Father. I come among you as a Mediatrix of graces, graces
free for the asking. I am a consoler of mothers, a director of
the wandering young, and above all, a light on the road to the
Kingdom. Won't you, My children, light your candles with Me and
follow Me as I direct you on the road to Heaven. (vol I page 132)
SEPTEMBER 28, 1973 - Our Lady said that I was given the
book. It's a very old book, from the time of Saint Louis de Montfort.
And I, Our Lady said that I'm to read this passage from It: There
are many who call themselves devotees of Our Lady. But, words
do not prove what is in the heart, but actions. They can fall,
he says, the man. Saint Louis, it's Louis. Oh, he said to call
him Saint Louis. Oh, into seven categories. We have much false
devotion to Our Lady. They are 1. They are the critical devotees.
These are those who call themselves devotees of Our Lady. But
they have categories, says Saint Louis de Montfort. They are;
the critical devotees, the scrupulous devotees, the external devotees,
the presumptuous devotees, the inconstant devotees, the hypocritical
devotees, and the really interested devotees. ................Now
Saint Louis says, "Those, the critical scholars, those of
much learning, with rash and self-sufficient spirit, who have
at the bottom of their hearts some devotion to the holy Virgin,
but who criticize nearly all the practices of devotion to Her
which the simple people must pay simply and holily to their good
Mother, because these practices do not fall in with their own
humor and fancy.
So those who are of intellectual pride would not approve because
it does not fit in with what is in their fancy. They call in doubt
all the miracles of Our Faith find the history recorded by authors
worthy of our Faith, or drawn from the chronicles of religious
orders, they call them down, for the narratives which testify
to us the mercies and the power of the most holy Virgin. They
cannot see, these who have the intellectual pride, without uneasiness,
how simple and humble people are, can be on their knees before
an altar or an image of Our Lady, sometimes in the corner of a
street, in order to pray to God there, and they even accuse them
of idolatry, and as if they adored the wood or the stone. They
say that for their part, those who have intellectual pride and
do have the rule of governing, they are not fond of these external
devotions and that their minds are not so weak as to give faith
to such a number of tales and little histories that are in circulation
about Our Lady. .........Therefore, Saint Louis says, watch and
pray and allow the Holy Spirit to work among you. In other words,
Saint Louis says, do not stop the workings of the Holy Spirit,
for it is not for man to judge the hand of God among you. (vol
I page 134, 135)
OCTOBER 6, 1973 - All who remain with Me throughout these
dark days will be saved. I promise to spread My mantle wide. Come
to Me all who are burdened with sorrows; mothers, hearts filled
with grief, fathers, who have sons of affliction. I will comfort
you, and I will strengthen you. (vol I page 140)
DECEMBER 24, 1973 - My children, I do not come to the proud
and the men of knowledge. I come to the little ones, little in
worldly knowledge, but filled with the spirit of truth; those
with little of worldly possessions, but carrying the keys to the
Kingdom. It is these children of God who will remain to greet
My Son when He returns. (vol I page 151)
MARCH 24, 1974 - My Son has given Himself to you, for His
word became Flesh. I offered Myself as a mother so that the Word
would reach the world. Humbly I stand before you as the Mother
of God and beg you as a Mother of earth to listen and hasten to
take action upon My words, for your time grows short. (vol I page
180)
MAY 30, 1974 - My Mother has been sent on this mission
by the Father to warn you, then to prepare you for what lies ahead
if you refuse to turn back from the ways that have set you onto
the path of darkness. The forces of evil are rampant now within
My House and in the hearts of men. Unless you turn back now, make
atonement to the Father for the many offenses against Him, you
will receive the sword. I cannot caution you enough to heed the
Messages of My Mother given to you in the past. Do not take Her
words idly. My Mother has come as a Mediatrix by permission of
the Father to intercede for an extension of mercy to you. (vol
I page 208)
JUNE 15, 1974 - You see, My child, you use the word 'Marylike,'
but the word is truly 'chastity,' 'modesty.' It is a word, 'chastity,'
the word, 'modesty.' soon forgotten on your earth. (vol I page
215)
My child, We have given the Message from Heaven. It will be accepted
or rejected in the will of mankind. The choice for the eternal
salvation of his soul still lies with each man. None will be forced
into Heaven. Graces will be given in abundance for the recovery
of souls but one must want to, My child: One will ask and receive
by merit the keys to the Kingdom. ...........I send upon you in
the Father and the Holy Spirit graces for the cure and conversion;
cure of the bodies and cure of the soul, all for the asking. All
who are labored with sorrow, come to My Mother and be solaced.
There is no rest in Heaven, there is no time as you measure it
upon earth. Know that My Mother is ever present on these grounds.
Ask and you shall receive, for She has set Herself with willingness
as Mediatrix for you, for She is your Mother and all mothers
upon earth will look up to My Mother as an example of purity and
sacrifice. (vol I page 218)
JUNE 18, 1974 - My child, it is with great joy that I look
upon the loving souls. My Mother has been sent to you as a Mediatrix
from the Father. You will listen to Her counsel, for you stand
in great trial in the days to come. It is only through the intercession
of My beloved Mother that you will be directed out of the darkness.
The Father, in the Spirit, deems that all must make atonement
for the offenses against the Creator. We send upon you many graces,
graces for cure and conversion, graces for the wayward souls.
Do not reject these, for you will then be forever lost. (vol I
page 224)
AUGUST 5, 1974 - My Mother has been allowed to accept My
Cross!! She did this of great heart for Her children! I do not
like to watch, I sorrow to watch, the abominations and the disrespect
given to My Mother! It is only the enemies of the Father in Heaven
that take this truth from you. You will not stop the words of
My Mother! She is your Co-Redemptrix and as such, it is She who
has been given the mission to bring you back onto the road to
the Kingdom! Without Her, you will be lost! (vol I page 240)
AUGUST 14, 1974 - Oh! Seventy-two years of service to the
Father. Our Lady is repeating: Seventy-two years of service to
the Father. I was honored by the Father in your years of twelve.
My young years, My child, were spent in seclusion. I, too, was
not without persecution when I carried on the apostle ship of
My Son. (vol I page 241,242)
NOVEMBER 1, 1974 - You will do well, My child, to emphasize
the need to hasten the message of My Mother to the world. She
has been sent to you as a Mediatrix, knowing that a Mother can
always reach the hearts of Her children. Do not cast Her words
aside or take them lightly. My Mother has given you the truth
in example. We have permitted from the Father the grace to fall
upon many of seeing what your human eyes are unable to see. Many
receive the graces but they cast them aside. Gather these graces.
Store them for your entrance into the Kingdom. You will only come
to Us through merit. (vol I page 289)
NOVEMBER 23, 1974 - I place, My child, your hand in Mine,
knowing that I protect you in the days ahead. I place My blue
mantle over all My children. What is there to fear but fear? Face
fear, My child, and it will soon disappear! (vol I page 299)
DECEMBER 6, 1974 - You will understand now, My child, how
needless it is to set yourself to worry for you drain your human
strength. The Will of the Father, the Most High God in Heaven,
will be done. Satan is not above the Father. He will go great
battle but I, your Mother will crush his head!..............Make
it known, My child, to the world that to give Me honor does not
detract or take from the honor of My Son. I say this, My child,
to you and My children, in all humility, I, your Mother, I, too,
am but an instrument of the Father in Heaven. My Son has chosen
to send Me to you as a Mediatrix between your world and the world
of a Father. (vol I page 304)
My Mother has shed many tears upon an ungrateful generation, an
unworthy generation, that has taken Her sacrifice and cast it
back into Her face! Woe to those who share a responsibility in
desecrating and offending the Heart of My Mother! Measure for
measure shall he receive his just reward! (vol I page 306)
DECEMBER 24, 1974 - Make it known, My child, to the world
that to give Me honor does not detract or take from the honor
to My Son. I say this, My child, to you and My children in all
humility, I, your Mother, I, too, am but an instrument of the
Father in Heaven. My Son has chosen to send Me to you as a Mediatrix
between your world and the world of a Father. (vol I page 310)
DECEMBER 28, 1974 - The words of the Queen of Heaven are
given to you for reason! You will hasten, hearken and listen and
act upon Her words! The time grows short! The balance is uneven!
The punishing hand of the Eternal Father shall descend fast upon
mankind! You have received a true warning from the Father! Prepare
yourselves now! Make ready for you are in deep darkness and the
light shall be forced upon you!..............My Mother has not
been sent to set fear in your heart but to warn you of the coming
Chastisement and to give you the extension of time for preparation
of your souls and the souls of your children. Heed this warning
now and act upon it. (vol I page 318)
DECEMBER 31, 1974 - You must accept a full consecration
of yourself and your families to the Immaculate Heart of My Son,
and Myself, My children. It is not that I ask this of you with
pride but humility. I, too, My child, am but an instrument of
the Father coming to you as your Mother, for I am truly your Mother,
and a Mother of great sorrow. ..............The Father, My Son
in the Father, has found it necessary to send Me to you as an
Emissary from Heaven. A Mediatrix between mankind and the Kingdom
of the Father............All who have consecrated their heart
with Us, have now received the mark of a Cross upon them. It is
a lifetime dedication and consecration. (vol I page 320)
MARCH 29, 1975 - My Mother has come to you as a Mediatrix.
Her voice has gone throughout your world. Many have rejected Her
words and those who accept them will be saved. Many will die in
the great flame of the Ball of Redemption. You will keep a constant
vigilance of prayer. (vol I page 353)
JUNE 18, 1975 - It grieves My Heart much to watch the manner
in which man has rejected My Mother upon earth...................I
have sent Her to you as your Mother, as My Mother, the Queen of
Heaven and Earth, to direct you in your battle against the forces
of evil. Without Her guidance you will not stay on the road to
Heaven. (vol I page 378)
AUGUST 5, 1975 - My Mother has been sent to your earth
as an Emissary from Heaven, a Mediatrix between you and the Eternal
Father. However, it is with much sorrow that We have observed
the manner in which She has been rejected by many. (vol I page
395)
AUGUST 21, 1975
- My Mother has spent years here with you warning you and
directing you back from your path of darkness..........However,
man has hardened his heart and closed his ears. In many places
throughout your world, My Mother, Her voice has been silenced
through the seers of the world. (vol I page 405)
Continue on your mission of saving souls. Time is not measured
by days nor hours for there is no time in Heaven. The end shall
come to you as a thief in the night. Be prepared and follow the
directions of My Mother carefully. I repeat: She will not abandon
you in the days ahead; but follow Her directions and you will
not go through this crucible of suffering without hope. (vol I
page 406)
NOVEMBER 20, 1975 - My child, you are observing My dress
in the Presentation at the Temple. I was very young, and I was
taken to the Temple by My parents to preserve My chastity, and
sanctity for the future............Man cannot understand the ways
of the Eternal Father. Therefore, I in Heaven can understand that
man is not knowledgeable in he ways of the Father and has set
himself to desecrate My memory. They reject the fact of the power
of their God in preserving My chastity in the will of the Father.
(vol I page 438)
NOVEMBER 22, 1975 - You see My Mother, your Queen of Heaven
and your Queen of Earth. Better that a man has died in the womb
of his mother than to disgrace and to bring discredit to My Mother..........You
who seek to take Her from the hearts of the children by your actions
and deceits, shall not have but a short time for your deception..........I
shall come among you and scatter you to the four corners of your
earth. I shall cleanse you in a manner that man has never experienced
in the past, nor ever shall in the future. (vol I page 445)
DECEMBER 6, 1975 - Do not be concerned, My child, of the
world's opinion and mankind's rejection, for My Own will know
Me. I am truly the light in a darkened world, My child. I say
this not in pride, but in fact and reality. I bring the light,
the Message from Heaven, in the will of My Son. I come to you
as a Mother, a mother of great heart, with great hope. I come
to prepare you as your Mother and to warn you that you must now
change from your ways that offend the Eternal Father much. (vol
I page 450)
Contemplate, My children, upon all the Messages given to you through
My Mother. She has been sent to you as a Mediatrix between God
and man. If you reject Her counsel, you will be lost. She has
promised to gather you all under Her mantle of protection and
guidance. My Mother shall be with you and among you until I arrive
after the great Chastisement. I will come soon because if I do
not, there will be no flesh left upon your earth. Your countrymen
and the leaders of your world now, is their greed and avarice,
made instruments of destruction! Satan inspired destruction of
the human body! The value for life, the human life, is gone! (vol
I page 452)
DECEMBER 27, 1975 - Your Holy Father, Paul, suffers much
from the enemies that surround him. He will accept a martyr's
end. Do not feel sad of heart, My child. The Father has a plan
for all. It is a great grace to accept a martyr's death. (vol
I page 460)
All who remain close to My Mother will not be caught unprepared,
My child. This is a great grace for many. Keep a constant vigilance
of prayer in your homes and in your country and throughout your
world. The beads of prayer, My Mother's Rosary to mankind is very
powerful. Do not discard your sacramentals, for they have the
power over the supernatural demons. Do not listen with itching
ears to those who try to discard the knowledge of the supernatural,
the demons and the existence of your angels. I would advise you
to call upon them often for you shall not survive the coming battle
without them. (vol I page 462)
FEBRUARY 10, 1976 - As My Mother has directed you, you
will find in time to come that the world shall know the full meaning
of Her words. All who have listened and acted upon Her direction
shall go through the crucible of suffering that is fast coming
upon your world. (vol I page 473)
APRIL 10, 1976 - My child, you are approaching a desperate
time of your mission. My Mother has directed you in the past to
proceed in haste with great purpose and not being obstructed in
your work by public opinion. It is through the mercy of the Eternal
Father that My Mother was given to mankind as a Mediatrix to bring
peace to your earth. This peace cannot be obtained unless mankind
follows the direction given by My Mother. (vol I page 481)
MAY 26, 1976 - How much more punishment shall the severity
increase to awaken you from your slumber? We have asked Our pastors
to put into action the direction given by My Mother to recover
My sheep. Instead, My Mother has been received with doubt, laxity,
apathy, and an absolute rejection by many. How many voice boxes
must We send among you to awaken you before it too late?...........I
accept, as your God, your rejection, but I will not accept the
rejection of My Mother. You shall not cover Her with filth, filth
in your printed periodicals. You shall not desecrate Her name
with lies. (vol I page 491)
JUNE 12, 1976 - My child, My Mother has given the warning
to mankind. She has wandered throughout your world as a trumpet
from Heaven, a trumpet that will sound a warning that shall reach
every man, woman, and child. (vol I page 502)
JUNE 18, 1976 - Veronica: Our Lady now is rising higher
into the sky. The wind is blowing. Our Lady looks very beautiful.
The graces are still cascading down like slivers of tiny rivulets
of glass. They're coming out from Our Lady's hands now. There
are streams of light coming out of Our Lady's hands, just like
they're, they're just coming from Her fingers. They're tremendous
lights, there's no way I can explain them in my human words. They're
a powerful light, and they're cutting right through the air onto
the grounds and the peoples. Oh, they're just beautiful! (vol
I page 505,506)
Our Lady now is placing both of Her hands out at Her side, but
in an arc. She's moving Her hands now in an arc, like this, and
the lights are pouring from Our Lady's fingers, down upon the
grounds. They have a great warmth. I feel a warmth that's beyond
expressing in human words. It goes far beyond earthly existence.............The
time, time and a half is upon mankind and coming to its close.
Have you listened and acted upon the warnings of My Mother? There
will be gnashing of teeth and much woe set upon the earth by the
dark forces of 666. My children, you will continue with the direction
of My Mother in the days ahead. She has been sent to you as a
Mediatrix between your God and man. Listen with an open mind and
an open heart. Seek, and you will be given the way to the light.
(vol I page 506)
JUNE 24, 1976 - The forces of evil are gathering about
the city of Jerusalem. I walked there, My children, My home will
be destroyed. There shall be much blood shed upon My home. (vol
I page 508)
JULY 15, 1976 - How many of you have even listened with small measure to the directions of My
Mother. How many of you share the responsibility for turning away
from Her and even to destroy Her in the minds and hearts of your
countrymen? All evil will eventually be turned to good. The forces
of evil, in the almighty knowledge of the Eternal Father, are
given their time for the separation of the sheep from the goats.
(vol I page 517)
AUGUST 14, 1976 - My children, I bring to you now a little
known story of the Assumption of My Mother. Yes, there were present
two small children, standing outside the crypt as I brought My
Mother forward. She lay but a short time in Her burial shroud,
and I came with Michael and Gabriel to take My Mother to the Kingdom
of the Eternal Father to receive Her much awarded crown. ............My
Mother received Her crown through suffering and perseverance.
She walked among men for many years after I ascended to the Father.
She waited and prayed and directed those about Her with care and
patience. She strengthened the foundation of My House upon earth,
and was awarded the crown gained by Her efforts. My children,
know that My Mother left your earth in both body and spirit. She
joined Me with the Eternal Father. (vol I page 523)
SEPTEMBER 14, 1976 - Remember, My child, I, as your Mother,
fully understand the great sorrow in your heart, for did I not
give My Son to the Eternal Father! Did I not have My Heart torn
asunder by this loss? Yes, My child, I also had a human nature.
I could cry; I could be sorrowful. I felt a great sadness, My
child. I feel, and I give you the simple lesson! It is only through
experience, My child, that can We have true compassion for the
sufferer. (vol I page 534)
OCTOBER 6, 1976 - My Mother cries constantly daily tears
for your mercy. My Mother shall no longer be betrayed by those
She loves, betrayed, I say, for you desecrate Her memory. You
remove Her from among you in every manner possible to take the
knowledge of Her being from among your children. (vol I page 550)
NOVEMBER 22, 1976 - My Mother as a Mediatrix between God
and man, has held in abeyance the heavy hand of your God that
must soon be set upon you in order to save your generation, for
I assure you, My children, in the destruction you are fast heading
into, there will be little flesh left unless We rescue you from
your own made destruction. (vol I page 563)
DECEMBER 7, 1976 - My Mother's Message is coming to mankind
in its final stage. Her tears fall upon a degenerate generation.
My Mother has been received by many with dishonor and disloyalty.
You, O man of little faith, you who walk in darkness, you are
not hidden from the all knowing eyes of the Eternal Father. I
send upon you a final warning, a cry for penance, atonement, and
sacrifice. I shall not wait until the young have lost all knowledge
of their God by atheistic teachers. (vol I page 568,569)
DECEMBER 28, 1976 - My children, I repeat My promise to
mankind that I shall be with you here upon your earth unto the
arrival, the second Coming of My Son. What was to happen in your
future shall be now. Because of man's stubbornness and sinful
life, what was to happen in man's future shall be now.(vol I page
576)
My children, My Mother has come to you as a Mediatrix between
God and man. My Mother has directed you well. You will now act
upon Her counsel or you will fall! )vol I page 577)
V O L U
M E I I
FEBRUARY 1, 1977 - My Mother has come to you as a Mediatrix
between God and man. Reject Her direction, reject Her counsel,
and you shall be rejected before the Father. (vol II page 21)
APRIL 9, 1977 - America, My mantle has been spread over
you in protection, but you whom I've protected in the past, you
also cast Me aside, for when you dishonor My Son, you dishonor
His Mother and you dishonor all of the saints in Heaven. (vol
II page 34)
MAY 14, 1977 - My children, I accept in suffering, in patience,
and with a consolable heart the abominations against My nature
and My Divinity in the Father and in the Spirit but I will not
tolerate the abuses to My Mother! You who have cast aside the
knowledge of My birth, accepting to degrade My Mother in your
hypocrisy and rejection of truth!..............The Eternal Father
chose My Mother before Her beginning on earth to be the receptacle
for My entrance onto your earth. My Mother was conceived without
sin; She knew not the stigma of sin, the original sin of mankind
from the first parents. She was destined from the beginning of
time, in the knowledge of the Eternal Father, to be a spotless
receptacle for My entrance into your world.
My Mother is not and was not an ordinary woman. My Mother was
ever-virgin. My Mother bore Me forth without pain and knowledge
of My entrance until the sound of the babe awakened Her and Her
spouse, Her pure spouse, Joseph. My Mother knew not man before
or after My birth. My Mother, as was written in the Book of old,
was ever-virgin. How dare you degrade Her, O man of little faith!
And where are you, loose shepherds, despoilers of My fold? I say
unto you: You shall receive measure for measure a just judgment!
(vol II page 40)
MAY 28, 1977 - You have been given a great grace from Heaven
to hear the counsel of My Mother, and you will in your free will
accept it or reject it; and woe to the man who will close his
heart and his ears to this counsel. (vol II page 49)
MAY 30, 1977 - I do not contradict My Message My children.
You must understand; My words are true, My counsel true, and I
must be followed exactly in this counsel. Man cannot change My
words to suit his own desires. (vol II page 50)
My children, My Mother will be with you through the tribulation.
Come to Her with your hearts. She will console and counsel you
all. Her heart is open, Her mantle is open wide to protect you.
You will receive on asking many graces of cures and conversions.
They will be given to you as numerously as the petals that come
from the heavens. (vol II page 52)
JUNE 18, 1977 - My children, My Mother did not come to
you to bring fear into your hearts; She came to counsel you as
a Mediatrix between God and man. Do not question Her Message.
You cannot cast aside any of Her words of counsel to suit yourselves.
No changes shall be made in My Mother's Messages, for no man shall
set himself above My Mother, the Queen of Heaven and earth. She
is your Mother also, and that is the reason She persists in begging
for you repatriation.
My children, console the bleeding heart of My Mother; console
Her by accepting Her words of counsel and acting upon them. Prayer
is the greatest weapon now you have against the forces of evil
loosed upon your world. It is the battle of all battles; satan
against the Spirit of life and light. Satan has now mobilized
the full forces and fury of hell against you! My Mother has prepared
you well if you accepted Her counsel. ..............My children,
I come to you as your Mother, as a Mediatrix from God to man,
chosen by the Eternal Father, with this plan to save you. Will
you not listen to Me now? There is so little time left. (vol II
page 62)
JULY 25, 1977 - Many of My clergy are on the road to perdition
and taking many trusting souls with them. It is a knife in My
Heart that satan has been allowed to enter into My Church, but
now My Mother has been given, as a Mediatrix between God and man,
the knowledge and power from Heaven to gather Our armies of little
saints upon earth. And it will be these people, humble, of little
means, but with full hearts, who will go forward and restore My
Church. (vol II page 70)
AUGUST 5, 1977 - My children, if you do not listen to My
counsel, you will live in a world in which the living will envy
the dead, so great will become the corruption, the murders, the
evil even reaching into the highest places in My Son's Church.
Pray, My children, a constant vigilance of prayer, I beg you as
your Mother. (vol II page 71)
OCTOBER 6, 1977 - My children, I could go through a long
discourse with you, repeating over and over the pleas of My Mother.
She has been truly a guardian of Her children upon earth. She
has set Herself to plead your cause before Heaven. For I assure
you, My children, if it were not for My Mother, you would have
received a just chastisement years before this. (vol II page 95)
NOVEMBER 1, 1977 - My child, My heart is torn. It feels
as though a thousand knives have pierced My heart. Every day another
enters. How many shall console Me in My sorrow? I am truly the
Mother of Sorrows. And why? Because My eyes look and watch the
multitudes of My children entering into hell day by day! I cannot
stem the tide now. I ask, I beseech, I plead with you as your
Mother to hold back the darkness. Fight the forces of darkness
and evil that have entered upon your world. (vol II page 97)
NOVEMBER 19, 1977 - My child and My children, at this time
I do not intend to enlarge upon My Mother's counsel. Need it be
said that a fair warning has been given to all mankind. My Mother
has set Herself as a victim for you, a victim because of the sins
of mankind. (vol II page 103)
DECEMBER 7, 1977 - My children, through countless visitations
to your earth, I have prepared you for My Son. I have been a Mediatrix
between God and man at the direction of the Eternal Father in
the Trinity. I open My mantle above you, My children; and know
now that I will protect you in the light. All who believe shall
be given the way. But, My children, I repeat the words of My Son:
This, My children, is what will be, in darkness will they seek
the way? This, My child, is what will be; in darkness will they
seek the way? (vol II page 109)
FEBRUARY 1, 1978 - My Mother shall continue to guide you
in the days ahead. She has made a promise to you and it will be
kept. The battle will accelerate and many shall fall away from
the Faith, for they do not have the strength in the battle. Pray
for your brothers and sisters. Be charitable even to those who
persecute you. You must all pray, but you must all work, My children,
for there is no strength in prayer without works. (vol II page
119)
FEBRUARY 10, 1978 - How long, My children, can I hold back
My Son's hand from descending upon mankind? I have been allowed
to come to you as a Mediatrix between God and man. I shed tears
of pity for you, for I have been given by the Eternal Father the
knowledge of seeing what is to come upon mankind very soon. Only
a few will be left in the final count. (vol II page 121)
MARCH 18, 1978 - My children, I have come to earth from
the beautiful realms of Heaven to warn you as a Mother. The Eternal
Father has sent Me as a Mediatrix between God and man. Neither
seeking to take the glory from My Son, as man make accusations
of, no, My children, I come in support of My sacrificed Son, for
He is being re sacrificed by mankind. My children, I have been
through this whole ordeal in the past, and I watch now as you
recrucify My Son. Is this how you have set yourselves about to
repay Him for His sacrifice, by blaspheming His name, destroying
His divinity, destroying the sheep? (vol II page 130)
MARCH 25, 1978 - With all of the counsel given in the past
by My Mother, counsel also brought to earth through various personages
from Heaven, has this all been to no avail? My Mother has set
Herself as a Mediatrix between God and man for your salvation.
In return She has received thorns from many. My Mother, She shall
not be blemished by the mouths or action of man in his fallen
nature. I do not ask that My Mother be a victim for the salvation
of man's soul. (vol II page 136)
MAY 13, 1978 - The world, earth, shall pass through a great
crucible of suffering. Many minor warnings have been given in
the past, and too few recognized them as such. Death will become
prevalent in your country. Murders, robberies, fornication, idleness
through famine and drought. My children, all who are of well spirit
shall pass through these times with perseverance. You must all
follow the counsel of My Mother. She has been permitted by the
Eternal Father to come to you as a Mediatrix between God and man.
Her counsel is true. She will remain with you, steadfast in Her
promise. It is the will of the Father that She shall direct the
children of earth in crushing the rule of satan. (vol II page
147)
MAY 30, 1978 - My children, as in the past, you are deaf
to My calling to you for penance. My Mother has accepted a heavy
penalty to rescue you, for She is doing the mission at Her expense,
as She listens to all of the blasphemy against Her and Her nature
of purity and holiness................ Graces are given in abundance
for the asking, but you must seek it, or some charitable brother
or sister upon earth must seek it for you. Graces are given in
abundance through My Mother's intercession for you. You will listen
to Her counsel. Her words are not given to you in idleness but
in preparation for what lies ahead in your near future. (vol II
page 157)
JUNE 1, 1978 - My children, I have not been unaffected
by the slanderous approaches to My Mother through Her children
who have gone astray. But know that for every slight to the beauty
of My Mother, every thorn in Her heart, shall be given double
to the perpetrator of such evil. (vol II page 161)
JULY 15, 1978 - My child and My children, you are now approaching
grave days. My Mother has prepared all of you for the trials ahead.
Needless to say, I shall not repeat again the counsel given to
you by My Mother. This counsel has been rejected by many, and
for all of Her heart that My Mother has extended to you, many
have returned this gift with bitterness, mockery and derision,
and blasphemy. (vol II page 172)
AUGUST 5, 1978 - I beg you as your Mother to listen to
My words of counsel, for this counsel comes directly from the
Eternal Father in Heaven. The hand of punishment is extended for
mankind. It grows very heavy, My children. How long can I hold
it from upon you? (vol II page 178)
AUGUST 14, 1978 - Veronica: Now Jesus has touched Our
Lady on the shoulder. Oh, He has His arm around Our Lady, like
this, and He's leading Her over to Michael. And Our Lady now;
Our Lady, is going on Her knees before Jesus. She's kneeling like
this with Her arms crossed. And now Michael has handed the crown
to Jesus, and He's placing the crown upon Her head! Oh, it's so
beautiful! (vol II page 182)
SEPTEMBER 7, 1978 - Do not become complacent or lethargic,
My children. There is no time to cast aside the truth, covering
it with all optimism. My Mother did not come to you as a prophet
of doom, but She came to you from Heaven with a message of realty
and what is to take place upon the earth. You will listen to Her,
for I assure you, My children, very soon there will be much gnashing
of teeth and woe set upon the earth. (vol II page 188)
SEPTEMBER 13, 1978 - My child and My children, I have wandered
with great speed to an fro across your earth gathering My children
who will listen to Me in the last stages, because you are fast
approaching the close of your era. ................O My children,
if you only realized and acted upon My counsel! If you only realized
what is coming fast upon you! Be it known to you in the past that
there will be many eruptions of nature resulting in hurricanes,
whirlwinds, floods, great heat and plagues upon mankind. ...........All
of this I have repeated to you over and over, because My Mother's
heart is torn for you. My children, many of you have become blinded
by sin. Many have closed their ears to My pleadings. Many go about
as scoffers and look upon My mission as a subject for ridicule
and derision. O My children, and to say it has been written in
the Book of Life and has been said again and again, that many
are called but few are chosen. (vol II page 191)
SEPTEMBER 28, 1978 - I have asked through My Mother, My
Mother Who has pleaded through countless earth-years, for an extension
of time for mankind to come back to the fold. But for My Mother
mankind would have been given a great Chastisement already. I
say this, My children, that you may understand that the evil has
accelerated upon earth. The Eternal Father has a plan to bring
about the separation of the sheep from the goats. The war is on
now, good and evil now, a war of the spirits.. (vol II page 195)
OCTOBER 6, 1978 - There is hope for mankind. My Mother
brings you this hope. The warning She gives, She gives to you
in love and charity, as only a Mother could express Her love in
Her heart to you. Do not cast Her away. Do not turn from Her,
but seek and you will be given the way. Believe, and you will
understand what My Mother is saying. (vol II page 199)
DECEMBER 7, 1978 - My child, as a Mother you will understand.
I have a world of children, whom I am losing every day upon earth.
I warn and I caution, and I cannot seem to save all. I shall wander
to and fro, My child and My children, hoping that, as My voice
goes through the voice-boxes upon earth, you will listen to Me.
Even if I recover one of My children, My heart shall be eased.
Pray with Me, weep with Me, My children. Extend charity to all.
(vol II page 209)
JULY 25, 1979 - In the past many saints were sent to you
to prepare you and warn you of these present days that you live
in. But who took heed of their counsel? And now My Mother wanders
upon earth, and who takes heed of Her counsel? How long do you
think I shall stand by and allow you to defame Her? I shall not
much longer allow My Mother to be victimized by you. (vol II page
235)
AUGUST 14, 1979 - I give you My Heart, torn anew by My
own. I give you My Mother, the gentlest of creatures, human and
sublime. I give you My Mother who will be with you through the
battle until I return as I ascended into Heaven. ..............Remember,
My children, come to My Mother, for in Her memory of Her human
days upon earth, She above all humans created, sinless, without
the stigma of sin, a perfect life upon earth without sin, and
assumed into Heaven, body and spirit, She above all can direct
you because She is your Mother; She is the Queen of Heaven and
the Mother of every human being upon earth. (vol II page 243)
SEPTEMBER 14, 1979 - Parents, Our hearts are extended to
you in pity, for your children shall bring great sorrow to your
hearts. My Mother has come to mankind as a Mediatrix between God
and man, and She alone is truly the Mother of great sorrows, knowing
that through all of earth years in Her travel, Her voice has cried
out to you through numerous seers, through countless earth years,
to turn back and cast aside the evil way that you have adopted,
that will lead mankind to a major disaster, world-wide disaster,
and the eventual Chastisement from Heaven. (vol II page 248)
OCTOBER 2, 1979 - O My children, what can I do now? If
I could take My heart and offer it to the Eternal Father to save
you, I would. My Son gave everything for you upon earth, and how
soon have you forgotten! Even now, as I wander across your earth,
visiting My children, I find that you are re crucifying My Son.
For all the Blood He shed for you, you defame His name. For the
heart that bled for you, you despise Him anew. O My children,
heap all upon Me the abuse that satisfies your addiction to sin,
but do not defame the name of My Son. I ask you as your Mother
to listen to Me, for I have come o try to save you, to save you
even from yourselves; for you are blinded by sin. (vol II page
253)
OCTOBER 6, 1979 - Your country and all of the countries
upon earth are in great crisis. As I have counseled you in the
past, I warn you now, as your Mother. Being sent to you as a Mediatrix
between God and man, I do not overshadow the Eternal Father of
My Son. But I come to you as your Mother, pleading with the Eternal
Father for your salvation, your redemption, pleading for your
cause before Heaven, that you may be granted an extension of time
to recover your senses; for you are blinded by sin! ...........My
children, as a Mother, My heart is torn for you. O mothers who
come to Me, hearts bleeding in sorrow, I will comfort you; for
I too, know the suffering of loss. Come to Me, all you who sorrow
and weep for your children; for I will place My mantle of love
and comfort upon you. Come to Me, and I will lighten your burden.
(vol II page 258)
My children, you have been given every opportunity to act upon
the warnings from Heaven, and the counsel of My Mother. In Her
mission to Her children, She has met with rejection, defamation,
blasphemy, and every abuse that Lucifer could implant into the
hearts and minds of man. As a great Mother of great sorrows, She
has opened Her heart to all mankind, choosing of Her own free
will to act as your Mother, the Mother of all nations, the Mother
of all children of earth, to guide you back to the road to Heaven.
(vol II page 259)
You will, My children, review the counsel from Heaven, given by
My Mother through Her earth-years with you. She will guide you
and be with you, until the end of your era and the end of time.
She has chosen of Her free will to accept Her place among you
as your Mother, as the Mother of the world. (vol II page 260)
NOVEMBER 20, 1979 - My child and My children, I am truly
a Mother of great sorrows. For I have wandered to and fro, calling
to you as your Mother, allowed to come to you, acting as a Mediatrix
between God and man at the command of the Eternal Father, to give
you every opportunity to save yourself and your families from
extinction. (vol II page 261)
DECEMBER 24, 1979 - My child, Veronica, and My children
of the earth, I have come to you with My Mother to bring you a
message of great urgency. In the battle of the spirits, now progressing
upon earth, you must be guided by prayer and the direction of
My Mother. (vol II page 267)
MAY 30, 1981 - Many years My Mother has traveled in diverse
places, among many tongues and nations, to caution you and counsel
you. Her heart, the purest heart in all the women of the world,
Our star of Heaven, your Mother, has tirelessly pursued Her urgent
pleadings with mankind to turn back, as they slowly go forward,
faster and faster, to their own destruction. (vol II page 283)
Count not upon the frailties of human relationship, because they
die and wither away. Whereas My Mother, in Her Immaculate Heart,
will always be there to counsel you, to guide you; because no
purer a love has even been given to mankind, that expressed when
She submitted to My persecution upon earth, and saw that I was
to leave. Knowing the will of the Father, She accepted this, and
in that way became truly the Mother of the world. (vol II page
284)
JUNE 18, 1982 - I have come to you as your Mother; a Mother
who loves you, a Mother who cares, a Mother who cries tears of
pity for you, for you do not know what you are doing. I ask you,
as your Mother, I appeal to you: I have wandered throughout your
world, through countless earth-years begging you to listen, even
to a small measure of My Message to the world, to turn now from
the ways that are offensive to your God, the Eternal Father in
Heaven, for you bring yourself a just punishment if you do not
mend your ways now and turn from your sin. (vol II page 303)
M E S
S A G E S
JULY 1, 1985 (MSG) - My children, I have great compassion
for all of My children of the earth. But I say unto you, you have
a free will. My Mother has accepted Her role as a Mediatrix between
God and man. If you listen to My Mother's counsel you will be
saved, and you will also share in the struggle to right the wrong
that has been done against the Eternal Father and all the personages
of Heaven. ...................My Mother told you some time ago
that soon Her words will be few, and this soon has now covered
a year's time. But you all know that as a voice-box We had to
seek and bring you, My child, back to the grounds so that We can
go forth, and together try, I say try, to save the world from
its own destruction.............Now, My child, because of the
long term of rest and illness, you will take three more photographs.
They will stress what I have just given you in words, that sometimes,
My child, one photograph can convert many, because seeing to some
is believing. Blessed are they who do not have to see to believe.
But if they must believe by some physical sign, We send all of
this to you, My children; conversions, cures, photographs. Surely
you cannot turn away from the pleas of My Mother. .................It
will take courage, My children, to carry this Mission forth. But
you will be guided by Our Blessed Mother. My Mother has accepted
Her role and She promises you, as I do, also, that We will be
with you until the end of time, and the beginning of a giant great
renewal. That, My child, shall be given in time to all mankind.
JULY 25, 1985 (MSG) - My Mother, for many earth-years,
has acted with Her heart to protect you. How many times the heavy
hand of the Eternal Father reached down to start out the calamities
with the Ball, and how many times did Our Lady rush forward. How
many times did My Mother rush forward to save you? The world knows
My Mother, but they cast Her aside. And those who are agents of
hell now, demons in human form, they cannot be retrieved; their
abode will be hell. But sad to say, it hurts My heart to know
that I cannot be rid of these thorns that I am forced to accept
for your salvation.
AUGUST 21, 1985 (MSG) - Yes, My child, no matter how the
world reacts to the truth, you will shout it from the rooftops
that Russia has not accepted any overtures from Rome. Unless Russia
can be dedicated to the Immaculate Heart of Jesus and Mary, unless
they will recognize the truth, they will continue to go throughout
the world sowing seeds of discord, discontentment, and war. You
know, My children, that war is a punishment for man's sins, but
also, war is an indication of the loss of the knowledge of God.
The enemies of God are all about you. Russia has planned these
days, My child and My children. And how I have begged for years
of earth's time that Russia be consecrated to My Immaculate Heart.
When she is consecrated she will be converted, My children, and
then you shall see the world of joy again. Tears shall be banished,
and mothers shall not sorrow until they die of grief for the loss
of their children and their sons.
SEPTEMBER 7, 1985 (MSG) - I have warned you all to protect
your children. I come to you as a Mother. So few can understand
My role throughout life on earth. I, too, know, My children, all
of your hardships, your sorrow, and the temptations from satan.
For I, too, was upon your earth, My children; this you have forgotten.
I am not unapproachable, as some think, because I was as one of
you, until the Eternal Father lifted Me up into Heaven. ........Fear
shall be struck into the hearts of most; but as you know, My child
and My children, I, as your Mother, will be with you throughout
all of the conflagrations of the world, so see that those who
have lived in justice, those who have shed their blood for the
salvation of souls, and those who have accepted their roles, as
a person would on your earth, before all of Heaven. There are
many who have accepted the role as victim souls.
Do not follow the scoffers who continue to say, 'His promise has
not and will not come true, to return in the Second Coming.' I
assure you I shall come to you all as a thief in the night. Little
will you be prepared unless you listen to My Mother's counsel
and keep your heart open for the truth. The more you seek riches
in this life, the less you will have in Heaven, for they do not
coincide, my child and My children. You cannot have a god, symbolized
by money, before you, for you will love one and hate the other.
And whom will you hate, My children, but Me?.............My child,
We will be here for the rest of the evening prayers. My Mother
must then go on to Lourdes..............Yes, My child, you cannot
understand the humanism that lies even in Our hearts, though everything
has become a spirit for the Father. In our human nature upon earth,
We have not forgotten. Yes, My Mother is traveling on to Lourdes.
But She returns as soon as possible. She has the world now to
try to awaken them before it is too late. My Mother does not rest,
but has gone endlessly, tirelessly, on to all the nations of the
world, appearing personally, to implore everyone to stop the carnage
that is fast coming upon the world. She does not want to see the
world destroyed.
SEPTEMBER 14, 1985 (MSG) - My child and My children, I
have come to you under many names in the past, but I want you
to acknowledge Me as the Mother of Grace. Because that is why
I come to you now, My children, to give you the graces necessary
to remain upon earth in a state of purity and perseverance, and
knowledgeable to the truth, that will lead you and keep you on
the narrow road to Heaven.
OCTOBER 5, 1985 (MSG) - Yes, My child and My children,
as a Mother of grace I have been given many powers, through My
Son, in the Eternal Father, and the Holy Spirit; many powers to
recover souls that are on the way to their destruction and ultimate
death in hell. I say 'death,' My children, I do not wish that
you misunderstand Me; you yourself know that your soul is immortal.
There is no death as you know it; only to the body, which in time
the good Lord, the Father in Heaven, in His mercy, will return
that body and soul and make it one again at the end of time. That
will be the resurrection of the body and the soul...........Today,
and this evening, I am happy at heart because there are so many
enlightened souls who have come to do honor to the gift from Heaven
of the Rosary. ...........My children, I know if you will only
place your confidence in Me, that with the Rosary and the Brown
Scapular, We can turn this all about. But it must take the efforts
in grace of all mankind. And there, My children, is little time
for you to turn about.............. O My children, My Mother's
heart is now torn asunder. I hear those words that are making
a mockery of Myself, My children. Yes, My child Veronica, I am
referring to the pornographic movie called the, 'The Hail Mary.'................My
Son has wanted and wished that direct action be taken against
those who have had even a small measure in partnership with those
who have sought to blaspheme My name, and, also, to cut My Heart
asunder.
I tell you as a Messenger from Heaven, I, too, My child, was just
an innocent child growing up in a family enlightened by God. I
knew My position upon earth, and I went forth to try to save you,
My children; and in My sacrifice there was salvation. I am asking
you all now, for the time left to your country and the world,
to pray a constant vigilance of prayer going throughout your world,
link to link, Father to Father. And the Hail Mary's shall be one
of glory to My Mother, and not will Her name be disturbed again,
as though it were a tombstone laid to rest.
NOVEMBER 1, 1985 - My child and my children, your world
is heading for a great catastrophe. Earthquakes will increase.
Floods will increase. There will be much weeping and gnashing
of teeth throughout the world as calamity upon calamity befalls
mankind. And why? Because you do not listen to the Queen of Peace
to bring the world back from the cataclysm it is facing. .............My
child and My children, I shall not give a long, dissentive discord
with you this evening because My heart has been torn at the necessity
of having My Mother repeat over and over the warnings from Heaven.
However, this She has chosen to do; for as a loving Mother, a
Mother of great heart, She wishes that no one be lost to Heaven.
Her heart is torn every time a soul descends into hell and purgatory.
My Mother is truly the Mother of the world. And at this time,
only She can save the world, for She has come to you as a Mediatrix
between God and man. And as such unto the time that no flesh shall
seem to remain upon earth, My Mother will be with you, and I,
also.
I repeat again: When I return to earth, I shall return the way
I left. I ascended, and I shall then descend, with the armies
of Heaven. You will see a banner that shall be raised at that
time called "Faithful and True," and in that way you
will know Me. My Mother will, also, descend during the time of
tribulation. Now do not become confused; that does not mean that
My Mother has left you, or is leaving you. My Mother has promised
that She shall be with you until the end of time; and She will.
.............You will pray constantly, My children. The prayers
can reach Heaven in short time, and perhaps can stop the next
tribulation. This is called a tribulation what will come upon
you next. It will be of an earth force again. However, with your
prayers, and your guarding of your homes, as We have always told
you to, with the crucifixes, you can escape with little damage,
or none at all. It will be as though the angel of death has passed
by your home. To some it will seem like a miracle, but to others
it's just an accepted part of life. For they will repeat: We are
doing as the Eternal Father has told us, and we are following
the directions of Our Blessed Mother, as She stood before us so
many times, and said, 'I am Mary, Help of Mothers. I love all
My children, and as such I will stand beside them, not wishing
that one shall fall into hell.
MAY 17, 1986 (MSG) - Russia, being an atheistic country,
My children, Russia, you cannot believe what they tell you, nor
what they print in their tabloids. Russia has but one plan; to
capture the whole world. They will do this without heart or conscience.
Therefore, know that I ask you again, as your God in the Trinity,
I ask you to contact the Holy Father and beg him to consecrate
Russia to the Immaculate Heart of My Mother. This has not been
done, My children. That is why as time goes on, until that grain
goes through the hourglass forever, that is why you will undergo
great suffering.
JUNE 18, 1986 (MSG) - My child and My children, My heart
is so lightened with joy at the numbers of wonderful souls who
have come here this evening to honor the Eternal Father when He
sent Me sixteen earth-years ago, down upon earth, to try to stop
the crisis in the Church, and the chaos that is going throughout
all the countries of the world. ..............My child and My
children, I came to you many years ago, at Fatima, with a plan
for the salvation of mankind. And I must say to you this evening,
as your Mother, that none of My words must be kept hidden any
longer, for it is urgent that the world make this final atonement.
The hourglass now is almost empty; days can be counted by hours.
For at this very moment We see a most terrible explosion, with
the loss of many lives about to take place.
O My children, you do not understand what I have given to other
seers upon earth to bring to you. Not only words of consolation
but words of truth. The truth sometimes does hurt, My children;
but I, as your Mother, must treat you at this time as adults,
being able to reason with the God-given reasoning that Heaven
gave unto you when you were conceived by the Holy Ghost. I say
this for this reason: The Eternal Father is much disturbed at
the numbers of abortions being committed throughout your country
and the world. These numbers go upwards to fifty to sixty million
is one year throughout the world. And this is too much for the
Eternal Father; and, also, for the souls who are now victim souls;
victims to try to save their brothers and sisters who have gone
astray from gaining their rightful deserts of destruction and
death. These victim souls, that have become victims of their own
accord and their own placement, they are the ones who have kept
the just punishment from coming upon you and mankind.
JUNE 6, 1987 (MSG) - For peace, My child, there is much asked for peace upon earth. I must tell you this: There will be no peace, My children, until what has happened in the past with My visit to Fatima is consummated. Now this has to be done, My children: I repeat this anew, as I have repeated it, as I have gone hinder and yon, across the earth to try to enlighten My children as to the road to true peace, you must now cast aside, abrogate, the union of Rome with Russia. For Russia must be consecrated to My Immaculate Heart for a true peace. ............Yes, My child, as
I told you before you left for the grounds, this would not be
a message of great solace but of truth. We expect you, My child,
to get this message, also, to the Holy Father, Pope John Paul
II in Rome, that he must put aside the Treaty he has accepted
from others, to keep from giving My Mother the necessary ammunition,
We will say, My child, I will use your term as used upon earth,
to fight satan. You must consecrate Russia to the Immaculate Heart
of My Mother, or there will be no peace, if but for a time.
JUNE 18, 1987 (MSG) - I ask all to listen to My Mother.
She has gone throughout the world through countless earthly, countless
years of earth suffering. Why? Because of Her children who do
not listen to Her counsel. ............It is not only here in
New York, My child, that My Mother has appeared. She has tried
to make Her presence known in other places, but has been rejected.
I cannot say how this hurts My heart, for I love My Mother as
the Queen of Heaven; that She is, and also the Queen of all hearts.
And most of all, She wishes to have the hearts of Her children
upon earth, each and every one of them. For all that is lost,
She cries constantly. Were it not for My Mother, and your Mother,
you would have received the Ball of Redemption much sooner that
you expected. But My Mother held My heavy hand back, as the Eternal
Father listened to the saints crying out from Heaven. When, O
when, My Lord, shall a just punishment come upon the evil ones
upon earth, who are sacrificing the saints?
OCTOBER 2, 1987 (MSG) - O My children, how I wanted to
caress you and tell you good news, for I am not the bearer of
bad news always. I am your Mother and must tell you the truth.
I repeat again, My child Veronica; you repeat now in your weakened
state, again; the Pope, John :Paul II, and all the bishops of
the world must allot one day on which they will pray for the conversion
of Russia. Not one day for the world, but one day for Russia;
or else, I tell you now, Russia will go about and annihilate,
destroy many countries. Nations shall disappear from the face
of the earth in the twinkling of an eye. That is how desperate
the situation is now throughout your world, My children. ............He
must take one day of this year, this year, not next year, this
year, one day with all the bishops of the world, he must consecrate
Russia to My Immaculate Heart. ................It can be done,
My children, with your prayers and your efforts. Your Pope, he
is a good man, but he is weak also, having human frailties, and
he has great undue pressures upon him. Help him, My children,
by writing, by trying to send through the blockade that they have
set up in front of him in Rome; send a message of grace from Heaven
to Holy Father Pope John Paul II. He must consecrate Russia to
My Immaculate Heart; or else Russia shall go throughout the whole
world, destroying nation upon nation, even the United states and
Canada.
I ask this of you as your God: In the Holy Sacrifice that I left
with you, I did not ask for women to be upon the altar, nor try
to be a high priestess. They carry this on in the churches of
satan; therefore, it shall not be carried on in My Church. .............When
I had the Last Supper with the Apostles, My Mother was not present.
If I had it in My power from the Eternal Father to make a priestess,
I would surely have chosen My Mother; but, no, there were no women
present at the first Dedication. ................I come to you
as your God, and I also want to make this clear: I did not have
any brothers or sisters in My family. My Mother was Mary ever
Virgin. this was a supernatural manifestation from Heaven; and
only those who are in the light, they fully understand the existence
of My Mother and the role She played in establishing the One,
True Church upon earth.
JUNE 18, 1988 (MSG) - Always remember, call Me, My children,
I am your Mother, your Mother of peace, your Mother of grace.
I am always your Mother, now and in the hereafter. When you come
across the veil, My children, you will fully understand how your
works of mercy and caring have brought you across the veil to
Heaven.
OCTOBER 1, 1988 (MSG) - My child and My children, My Mother
has been going throughout the world. She is crying tears of pity
upon mankind, for She knows the whole program ahead.
OCTOBER 6, 1986 (MSG) - My child and My children, there
is not much more that I can say to you. My words have gone throughout
the world, and how many have acted upon them? I come to you as
a Mother of Peace, a Mother of love. My tears have been shed upon
you all. I will not give up the incentive to want to save every
child upon earth. I shall wander to and fro wherever My voice
can be heard, and bring to the world the final message before
the end of the age.
MARCH 18, 1989 (MSG) - My child and My children, there
is one thing I wish to bring to you this evening: That is the
word of Russia. You do not understand the great threat she is
to the world. I say 'she' because We have nothing else that exemplative
of explaining the necessity to convert Russia. Now My Mother in
the past has told you through countless earth-years of visits
upon earth how to do this. I repeat from My Mother Her words to
the world some time ago, and I believe, My child, you have been
a voice-box before and a means for Heaven to transport this message
to the world, that is, that the Holy Father in Rome, in unison
with all of the bishops of the world, must consecrate Russia to
the Immaculate Heart of My Mother.
JUNE 17, 1989 (MSG) - Veronica: Jesus and Our Lady are
still standing there. Jesus has His head down low; He looks like
He's very upset. I know why. And He's pointing over to Our Lady,
and Our Lady is crying. It's like a repetition of many years ago
when She said, "My tears fall upon you." And I know
its 1970 She cried and cried, just as She's doing tonight. And
I know from a discourse with Our Lady earlier that these tears
are caused by the abominations that are taking place in the world
against Her Son, Jesus. Our Lady feels that for all He did for
us upon earth that we could never turn in such violence against
Him and His Church.
OCTOBER 2, 1989 (MSG) - My child and My children, I, too,
have watched; the Eternal Father made it known that I must see
what is going on in the world today. And, I, as your Mother, have
given My decision to the Eternal Father to go forward throughout
the world, appearing in numerous places now, to awaken the world
to the reality of everlasting life. ............And even now,
my sister, there is much grief in Heaven. And I know that Our
Blessed Mother sheds many tears daily upon the world because of
the present abominable conditions. Man is fast heading for a cataclysm.
Soon, we all know of the coming of the Ball of Redemption upon
mankind, and it is now heading fast in.
OCTOBER 2, 1990 (MSG) - I, your Mother, and Protectress
of the world's children, do beg you now to repent of your sins
against the teachings of the Eternal Father; sins of the flesh
and the intellect. ....................A great war will erupt
suddenly, such as has not been seen from the beginning of creation.
Countries shall disappear in moments from the face of the earth.
Will you not listen to Me before it is too late? You all do not
have much time left..............I come to you as a Protectress
of Peace. Unless you repent of your abortions, the murders of
the unborn, and return to lives of prayer and contemplation of
the mysteries of the Eternal Father, given by writings, the Bible,
the Book of life and love, I cannot save you from the conflagration
that lies ahead.
JUNE 18, 1991 (MSG) - My child, My tears fall upon you
all. If it weren't for My pleading constantly for you before the
throne of the Eternal Father, this would have come upon mankind
sooner. But now I can tell you that those who will be saved will
be counted in the few. Those who will be saved will be counted
in the few. .................My child and My children, I come
to you as a Mother of peace, a Mother of love. And above all,
I want you to turn to My Son and have courage in the days ahead.
Many will fall from the Ball of Redemption. ............Now, My
child, I know that this has been a time of great stress for you.
It is urgent that the message from My Son be given to the world.
..................I bless you, My children, I seek in My heart
to find a refuge for you all. I am not despairing at this time
at the knowledge that was given to Me by the Eternal Father. I
have great hopes for rescuing most of My children. But the Eternal
Father makes it known that the numbers saved will be counted in
the few. ...............My child and My children, I will not elaborate
on My Son's discourse with you tonight. All I can say is I stand
before the Eternal Father and continuously plead your cause before
Him. If this was not to be, you would have received the Ball of
Redemption already. I do not know, My children, how long I can
hold the hand of the Eternal Father back. I can say at this time,
that when the Ball of Redemption hits the earth, only a few will
be saved.
JUNE 18, 1992 (MSG) - I, as your Mother, understand the
difficulties of the world. Your must remember, My children, I
was also among you and one of you, and I understand all that is
going one.................And through the countless years that
I've overlooked everyone from Heaven with My Son, this is not
unusual to find a country in the state such as yours is, My child.
JUNE 18, 1993 (MSG) - There have been many miracles set
forth upon the earth by My Mother. This We have allowed as a grace
to mankind, but many have been forgotten and rejected. My Mother
has at this time gone throughout all corners of the world seeking
salvation for mankind. How many have listened to Her counsel?..........Man
can defame Me very easily, but I will not allow him to defame
My Mother.........My child, Veronica, I do not mean to frighten
you. But I am in dire suffering for the abuse to My Mother. I
will not accept this much longer. Unless man makes a complete
change from the ways that offend the Eternal Father, We will no
longer try to keep His heavy hand from upon you.
MARY: ASSUMPTION INTO HEAVEN
MAY 30, 1973 - My Mother came to Heaven in the body. ..................Veronica:
Oh-h-h! Oh, and now He's pointing over to the left side, and
I see, I see a lady. Now it's Our Lady, but She's lying down on
a, on a slab. But now there's a great light over Her as She's
lying on the slab and, oh-h-h! This light seems to be lifting
Her. The light is very bright. It's coming down from the sky,
and it's now lifting Our Lady. And now She is just floating up,
up, up, oh-h-h! And She's now standing over....And now She's removing,
it looks like sheeting, sheets, like were wrapped around Her,
and they're dropping off. And now, oh, She has on a beautiful
blue cape, a mantle, and a white dress, and now there's a blue
sash about Her dress. And She's holding out Her beads, Her Rosary.
They're very large. The beads are white, but the Our Fathers now
are, oh, they're very large and they're golden. The gold is brilliant.
It's shining so brilliantly that actually it's shooting out rays.
The Our Fathers now from Our Lady's beads are shooting out rays.
They're coming over in this direction. It's just like streaks
of golden fire. Oh! All the way back. Oh! right back over the
trees. And they're beautiful. Oh, beautiful! Oh! (vol I page
103)
AUGUST 14, 1973 - Jesus: I want to show you, My child, the Assumption of My Mother...........
Veronica: Now I see, I see like a hillside. And there's a cave-like,
oh, I guess it's a grave, sort of, but it's not like in a graveyard.
It's like cut out of a hillside. And there's a slab, there's a
slab of stone. And I see, it looks like a mummy, because I see
a body all wound up in white sheeting-like pieces. But it's sort
of not white sheeting, exactly, it's like very rough-looking with
dots sort of in it, like muslin, sort of, and wound up just like
a mummy............Now Jesus is, oh, He's coming. Now this place
is all closed off. There's no door. It's like, oh, like a mausoleum
or something, but it's more like a cave. And I see Jesus now;
He's standing there now, and He's placed His hand on the sheeting.
And all of a sudden there's a tremendous light around this, like
a person in the sheeting. Ah! And I see the sheeting is just unwinding,
falling away. And there, it's Our Lady, but She's sitting up.
And Jesus is standing next to Her. And now as the sheeting is
falling off, it's just falling away from Her, disintegrating.
(vol I page 123)
She has a most beautiful white gown; oh, pure white. She's bare-footed
now, and Jesus has placed out His hand, and He's taken Her hand,
and She's all lit up, beautiful!............Now I see Our Lady
is, I know it's Our Lady. She's getting younger and younger. When
the sheet was first away from Her. She looked kind of old, maybe
around, maybe 73, 74. But now She looks a little girl. She's beautiful!
She's very young looking..........And Jesus now is taking Her
hand and They are both just rising. They're going up, up, up,
and right through the rock! Absolutely! They went through the
rock! Now I see Them outside the door, and I see Jesus and Our
Lady, and the light is tremendous. Oh, and Jesus now is holding
Our Lady's hand..........And there are, oh, hundreds of angel
figures about Them. And there's beautiful music. Ah-ah, alleluia,
ah-ah alleluia. And there's voices; they're so loud, they're,
it sounds like millions of voices...........I see Them, and Our
Lady now is rising. Our Lady is all beautiful in white. It's,
I can't explain it. It's just like in a tremendous light. And
now They're rising far, far up into the sky. And I can't see Them
any more. Now it's though They've disappeared right into the sky.
Absolutely gone, and the sky now has become a very deep, deep,
deep blue. (vol I page 124)
AUGUST 14, 1974 - Veronica: Now two men are coming forward
and walking over to the side of this room. The room has no flooring
it's dirt, and the walls, they look like almost the walls of a
cave. Ooh! I see a large rock suspended on two boulders. Oh, my!
And I see a lady, she's laying down on this slab-like rock and
she's covered over with a white sheet............Now all of the
men and the women are walking around about her and some are kneeling
and now one woman is going to the head of her; she has a sort
of candelabra. There are three candles in it, and she's placed
now a black-colored shawl on her head and she sounds like she's
wailing; she's crying. But I never saw anyone cry like that........Now
I can look down and I see the face of a lady. I know, ooh! It's
Our, I know who it is; it's Our Blessed Mother! She looks like
She's asleep. Now, the women are leaving the room and I see the
men looking over to the right side of the room. They look very
startled and the room is becoming very bright. Oooh! And there
coming into the room is Jesus! Oh! He looks so beautiful! He's
dressed all in white............The light is so bright I can barely
look at it, and with Him is Michael and the most beautiful little
girls; or I think they're girls, they're young angels, cherubim,
and they're going over now.
Jesus is walking over and He is now taking the hand of Our Lady
and She's just sitting up! She's sitting up but She seems to be
weightless!...........Now Jesus walking over towards the exit
or the door, it's not a door, it has no door, it's just an opening,
like a cave and Our Lady is going with Him but She's not walking.
She's floating and I see all the men there, they've fallen on
the ground, and some of them are holding their faces and others
are looking just staring! ...........Now They're outside, oooh!
It's more beautiful outside but it's quite warm. Oh, my! I'm watching
now, the sky is beautiful and Jesus now and Our Lady and Michael,
Michael is behind Our Lady and They're going up, up, up! They're
going up into the sky. Now Our Lady has dropped from Her that
cloth that was around Her, the white cloth has dropped away. And
Our Lady now has on Her a beautiful white gown with a gold belt
and She has now Her head covered by a beautiful cloak-like cape
that hangs down the back. I can only see Her now from the back
and I can see Jesus. His robe now is also blowing in the wind.
Oh! And They're growing smaller, I can't see Them. And I hear
beautiful sounds, music, and it's like voices, beautiful voices...........Now
Michael is going over to the side of Our Lady, on Her left side,
and he placing something on Her head. It's, oh! It's a crown but
it goes over, he placed it over Her robe. I can't see Her hair.
It's very beautiful. Now there seems to be a great mist; a cloud-like
mist forming. The cloud and the sky have closed in. Ohhh! (vol
I page 241)
AUGUST 14, 1976 - My children, I bring to you now a little
known story of the Assumption of My Mother. Yes, there were present
two small children, standing outside the crypt as I brought My
Mother forward. She lay but a short time in Her burial shroud,
and I came with Michael and Gabriel to take My Mother to the Kingdom
of the Eternal Father to receive Her much awarded crown. ............My
Mother received Her crown through suffering and perseverance.
She walked among men for many years after I ascended to the Father.
She waited and prayed and directed those about Her with care and
patience. She strengthened the foundation of My House upon earth,
and was awarded the crown gained by Her efforts. My children,
know that My Mother left your earth in both body and spirit. She
joined Me with the Eternal Father. (vol I page 523)
MARY: IMMACULATE CONCEPTION
MARCH 25, 1973 - I bless you with the shield of the Immaculate
Conception in the name of the Father, and the Son, and the Holy
Ghost. May you be protected with the shield of the Immaculate
Conception. (vol I page 90)
AUGUST 21, 1975 - Our Lady is extending Her hand out with
the golden crucifix. I bless you all now, My children, in the
name of the Father and of the Son and of the Holy Ghost. I bless
you with the shield of My Immaculate Conception; In the name of
the Father, and of the Holy Ghost, and the Son, My Son Whose Heart
bleeds for the condition of the souls of mankind. Save yourselves,
My children, in the Sacred Heart of My Son. (vol I page 404)
JUNE 13, 1981 - Clergy in My Son's House, I, your Mother,
I come to you as the Mother of the world, your Mother, known to
you by many names, Mary Immaculate, of the Immaculate Conception,
I have appeared to many, in all nations of the world, in order
to save your world from destruction. (vol II page 286)
SEPTEMBER 7, 1985 (MSG) - I bless you with the Shield of
the Immaculate Conception: In the name of the Father, and of the
Son, and of the Holy Ghost. May you be protected by the Shield
of the Immaculate Conception.
NOVEMBER 1, 1985 (MSG) - May you be protected by the shield
of the Immaculate Conception. In the name of the Father, and of
Son, and of the Holy Ghost.
MARY: MYSTICAL ROSE
DECEMBER 31, 1973 - My Mother is known as the Mystical
Rose. Remember, My child, the Mystical Rose. (vol I page 156)
OCTOBER 6, 1974 - My child, in My mission with you, I did
not explain the meaning of this rose. It is a symbol of perfection
and piety. It is the Queen among flowers, a beauty beyond all
human understanding, in the supernatural. That is why the good
of heart have referred to My Queen ship as the "Mystical
Rose." (vol I page 280)
MASONRY/FREEMASONS - See Satanists: Secret Societies: Freemasons
MASS, THE/SACRIFICE
V O L
U M E I
OCTOBER, 1971 - Make is known that the Faith in My Mass,
in My House, shall not be discarded. You will NOT lose faith in
My Mass. I am present in physical and spirit in My House and in
My Mass and anti-Christ shall not destroy this truth! ...............Agents
of satan are everywhere. You will learn to recognize the face
of evil. Pray for the Light! (vol I page 37)
JUNE 8, 1972 - There are many offenses being committed
against the purity of (sacredness) the Holy Mass. Half-naked practices
of worldly music and pagan dancing are being condoned by the priests!
It is too late to condone these offenses to God. You call down
punishment! (vol I page 53)
AUGUST 1972 - Saint Paul and the Holy Bible prove.....that
women must wear a head covering at Holy Service (Mass), and while
praying. The angels who assist at the divine Service are interested
in having all done properly........Epistle of St. Paul to the
Corinthians, Chapter 11:10 - Have you chosen to ignore the teachings
of the fathers of the Church; the chosen ones of God? St. Peter,
the first Pope? St Paul, St. Matthew, St. Mark, St. Luke, St.
John, St James..... The Holy Bible? (vol I page 58)
OCTOBER 6, 1973 - Yes, My child, Jesus is always present
in His House. The Holy Sacrifice of His Mass is always valid when
performed by a duly ordained priest, no matter what his human
character is. At the time of the Consecration the Father sends
the Holy Spirit down to use this human being known as your High
Priest, to bring to you the Body and the Blood, spiritual and
physical, of My Son to you...It is satan's plan to drive you from
My Son's House by creating a fallacy and the outright lie, My
children, that the Mass is no longer valid and My Son not present!
.............It is satan's plan to drive you from My Son's House
by creating a fallacy and the outright lie, My children, that
the Mass is no longer valid and My Son not present! We see and
watch and use human instruments to make the corrections necessary
to right the houses of My Son. Many have hardened their hearts
and do not listen to these warnings from Heaven. Then, My child,
all the Father can do is to cleanse them. (vol I page 140)
MAY 22, 1974 - Know, My child, that the heart of the sacrifice
is in what you call the Eucharist. You will eat of My Body and
drink of My Flesh or you will not have the light within you. You
will not have the light within you, but will fall into darkness
if you do not eat of My Body and drink of My Flesh. (vol I page
197)
JUNE 8, 1974 - The enemies of your Father, the Father of
all creation, Who will sit in judgment soon upon mankind, He is
greatly offended by the manner in which the great Sacrifice is
being performed. The Father sent My Son to you as a great sacrifice,
to open the doors of Heaven to a sinful generation. However, this
fact has been cast aside and replaced by a scientific knowledge
that has come from satan. Man in his arrogance casts aside the
truth and the light, going farther into the darkness. (vol I page
209)
SEPTEMBER 13, 1974 - Veronica: Now, all who are able please
kneel as an act of atonement, for many do not bend the knee for
Jesus during the Holy Sacrifice, Our Lady says. (vol I page 264)
NOVEMBER 23, 1974 - You must all stand firm in your faith.
Do not abandon My Son's House, Church, know that you must not
judge My Son's House by the actions of man. Man has been created
by the Father, and man in his human nature can fall, My child.
Do not judge My Son's Church by the actions of man. Know that
regardless of the actions of man, My Son will always be there
in the Eucharist. A duly ordained and consecrated hand of a legal
representative, your priest, will always be able to bring to you
My Son's Body and Blood in the Eucharist. The enemies of My Son
wish to take this truth from you. They say that the Mass is not
valid. That is not true, My child. Through the power of the Father
in the Spirit, My Son comes to you. He comes to you physically
and spiritually in presence. Do not accept the error of you day
that this is a story or myth, My children. I assure you My Son
is there with you. (vol I page 299)
MARCH 18, 1975 - You must, My children, make it known to
your brothers and sisters that the last meeting of My Son was
not a m-e-a-l! It was not deemed to be a meal by the Eternal Father!
It was the start of a Sacrifice! That Sacrifice was known by the
Father and My Son, and was to be perpetrated and continued unto
eternity! ................During the Holy Sacrifice of your Mass,
My children, you shall receive among you the physical and spiritual
Body and Blood of My Son! This is not but a memory or a myth,
My children! Understand the Supernatural! Understand that My Son
comes to you fully in Spirit and Physical Body. That is why the
Angels who attend the Sacred Service, demand, command that you
conduct yourselves with the honor due to My Son, in the Father,
and the Holy Ghost.
Women shall not approach the Sacred Body dressed as pagans! Exposing
the temples of their spirit to shame! Cover yourselves, My children,
or you will burn!................I repeat, women shall dress as
befits a wife and mother! Clothing themselves with modesty and
holiness. Children will follow the example of their parents therefore,
if your example is poor, your children will be your thorns. The
sins of the parents are surely visited upon the children. .............During
the Sacrifice, My children, you must unite yourselves in heart
with My Son in His Sacrifice. You will not be distracted by all
manners of diversions that We watch being perpetrated in My Son's
Churches at this moment. ..........At every second in every moment
of the day and night, the Sacrifice continues. Oh, how sad it
will be, My children, if this Bread of Life is removed from you!
(vol I page 340)
MARCH 22, 1975 - Women, remove your arrogance! You are
searching in darkness! As a sign of reverence, you will cover
your head! It is not that I call is custom, My children, it is
that the Angels demand this!!!! In the presence of the Sacrifice,
Mass! (vol I page 346)
APRIL 5, 1975 - Place more attention upon the Holy Sacrifice.
It is being celebrated in a manner that is not approved of by
the Eternal Father. Take the time to honor your God with your
heart. My brothers and sisters, the Holy Sacrifice cannot be done
in thirty minutes or even sixty minutes properly. There is no
time in Heaven and you shall not place a time upon the Holy Sacrifice
on your earth. (vol I page 356)
SEPTEMBER 6, 1975 - Attend in reverence at the Sacrifice
of My Son. It is an expression of love, gratitude, and respect.
Reverence and respect and holiness must be returned to My Son's
Houses (churches) throughout the world. Reverence, holiness, and
respect, from the beginning to the end of the Sacred Service!
Women must keep their heads covered, My child. It is not because
of fashion or mode. It is because the Eternal Father and the angels
demand proper deportment during the Holy Sacrifice! (vol I page
409)
DECEMBER 24, 1975 - The few who attend the Sacrifice, the
Holy Sacrifice, My child, the few are the true of heart but many
come with all manner of abominations in their hearts! My Son's
House has become, not a temple of prayer, but a house of diversion,
of abominations and a gathering place for all demons! (vol I page
454)
MARCH 18, 1976 - I repeat for your enlightenment again;
no woman shall stand in the Sacrifice as a priest. How dare you
set yourselves for a change created by satan! The plan of the
Eternal Father has been made quite clear to you. Your father now
is not the Eternal Father of Heaven, but the father of all liars,
satan! My Son's Body, sacrificed for you, tortured for you, is
now being re-crucified in His own Church! (vol I page 477)
APRIL 10, 1976 - The great Sacrifice, My child, has been
misunderstood by many. It was the will of the Eternal Father that
one universal language be used along with, in comparison with,
together with the language of the land. The universal language,
Latin, befit and was chosen by the Eternal Father as a universal
language for the universal Church, the Roman Catholic Church under
the leadership of Pope Paul VI, the successor of Peter. Do you
not understand, My children, that you were united in beauty, that
you were united in understanding? ............Because of the fall
in Babylon, many new languages were given because of the sin of
Babylon. Therefore, as a member of one country, My children, with
a universal language, you carried with you your own country's
translation, and were you to visit abroad, you could enter upon
any foreign edifice, Church of My Son, and feel comfortable and
in one with the man, the priest, the one chosen by My Son to represent
Him in His House. If you were, My child, to go from your United
States to France, could you understand the words in French? But,
My child, you would recognize the words in Latin and you would
have your book with you to read in your American language, just
as those in France could read in their French language, bringing
upon the world a beautiful and common bond of language among all
who have been given the grace to be called to the Roman Catholic
Church of My Son. (vol I page 479)
MAY 29, 1976 - My child, tell all to act as good example
in My Son's House. Women must wear a head covering in the holy
places and in prayer. It is not because of custom; it is because
the angels demand proper deportment during the Holy Sacrifice.
(vol I page 493)
JUNE 12, 1976 - My child, I am demonstrating the stance
that Heaven expects of Our children in their prayer life. During
the Holy Sacrifice there is much disrespect evident. You must
during the Sacrifice, place your hands together this way, and
going in spirit with My Son during His Sacrifice. (vol I page
500)
AUGUST 5, 1976 - My child, you and those who have gathered
throughout your world as candles to carry the light through the
darkness will accept much suffering as they watch the forces of
evil gather. My Son is being recrucified by His very own. Do not
lose faith or hope; do not abandon My Son's Churches throughout
your world, My children. The Mass, the Holy Sacrifice, is still
valid. (vol I page 520)
AUGUST 14, 1976 - All who wish to be saved must remain
with My Son in the Eucharist, for it is truly the Bread of life.
You cannot have the light within you without partaking of this
Bread of life. You must not reject the Real Presence of My Son.
You must not make this Sacrifice a mere meal, for you have then
brought the greatest of desecration and abominations before mankind.
My Son, your God, is, was, and always will be. (vol I page 523)
SEPTEMBER 28, 1976 - My children, My Son, His heart is
pierced by the manner in which many come to His House with disrespect,
apathy, and using His House as a meeting place for all manner
of abominations. In due respect on this night of the feast of
the high angels in the Eternal Kingdom, they demand, and Michael
commands, that women must cover their heads during the Holy Sacrifice
of the Mass. It is not through custom that this is asked of you.
Do not be deluded by satan, My children. Women must cover their
heads in respect for the Sacrifice of My Son, in respect for all
laws of your God and not of man; for man now, My children, is
setting up his own laws, his own rules, and man shall destroy
himself in this manner. (vol I page 537)
DECEMBER 7, 1976 - The conduct of women during the Holy
Sacrifice of the Mass shall be one of silence. No woman shall
speak out during the Holy Sacrifice of the Mass. Women must wear
head coverings when they enter the House of God. The House of
God is a place of prayer, and not a meeting place or dance hall.
No woman shall speak from the pulpit. No woman shall enter the
ministry. (vol I page 567)
You will go forward in the days ahead, retiring from your world
that has been given to satan. Do not allow your parish doors to
close, My children. By your example, unify as a parish group and
you will patch the cracks. Do not lose faith in My Mass; it is
valid. Man may distort, but it is valid, I say. When a legally
ordained priest of the Roman Catholic Church conducts the Mass,
it is valid, I say. (vol I page 569)
V O L
U M E I I
FEBRUARY 1, 1977 - You violate your sacred trust. You have
taken the Body of your Creator, the Son of your God in the Trinity,
and violated Him. You must do your eating at home! When you come
to the great Sacrifice, the Holy Sacrifice of the Mass, you come
in reverence. You must go down upon your knees and do penance
now for the offenses to your God! ............During the Holy
Sacrifice of the Mass, there is a change of the bread and change
of the wine, and it is the real Presence, the Body and Blood of
your God!...............As in the past, cannot you recognize the
mystery of Heaven and earth? Did not the staff of Moses turn into
a serpent in the Will of God? Did not the river in Egypt turn
into blood in the Will of God? And cannot God, in His Will, come
to you changing the bread and wine into the actual Presence, the
real Presence, the factual Presence of His Body and Blood? (vol
II page 18)
APRIL 9, 1977 - We look upon you, My children, and find
that you are consorting with astrologers, sorcerers, paganism,
even bringing this way of life into My Son's Church! Like pagans,
you dance down the aisles during the Holy Sacrifice! Like pagans
you come undressed, My children, to the holy Sacrifice! You conduct
yourselves without respect or love! (vol II page 35)
MAY 14, 1977 - My child, I repeat Myself to you: At the
start of the Consecration in the Holy Sacrifice of the Mass, you
will join your hands together and remain this way until all have
received the Body and Blood of My beloved Son, respectfully and
rightfully. (vol II page 44)
MAY 28, 1977 - My child, I repeat Myself to you; at the
start of the Consecration in the Holy Sacrifice of the Mass, you
will join your hands together and remain this way until all have
received the Body and Blood of My beloved Son, respectfully and
rightfully. (vol II page 49)
NOVEMBER 19, 1977 - My heart is torn, My children, at the
manner in which you do honor to My Son in His House! The angels
demand proper deportment during the Holy Sacrifice of My Son.
A woman must have her head covered. It is the command of the angels
who are present at the Holy Sacrifice. All flesh and nakedness
shall burn with the Ball of Redemption. Cover your bodies! They
are temples of the Holy Ghost! (vol II page 101)
APRIL 1, 1978 - Now also in relation to a woman's head
being covered during the Holy Sacrifice of the Mass and proper
deportment within the portals of Holy Church where Jesus is residing.
Now I am sure that our liberationists would not go along with
as in this respect. However, this would actually signify that
much of the liberation movement is being directed by satan, and
not by God. Now, the headdress for women, this is St. Paul to
the Corinthians, Chapter 11: Now I praise you brethren, because
in all things you are mindful of me and hold fast my precepts
as I gave them to you. But I would have you know that the head
of every man is Christ. And the head of the woman is the man,
and the head of Christ is God. Every man praying or prophesying
with his head covered disgraces his head. But every woman praying
or prophesying with her head uncovered disgraces her head, for
it is the same as if she were shaven. A man indeed ought not to
cover his head because he is the image and glory of God, but woman
is the glory of man. For man is not from woman, but woman from
man, made from man by God. For man was not created for woman but
woman for man. This is why the woman ought to have a sign of authority
over her head because of the angels............In other words,
St. Paul is saying that it's not just custom. This is the excuse
given by the liberation movement to stop the head covering of
women in the church. Well, they say that it is custom only in
St. Paul's time. But that is not true because St. Paul explains,
and these are the words direct from God through St. Paul, that
you must have your head covered. It is proper deportment in the
eyes of the angels. (vol II page 139)
JUNE 10, 1978 - I ask you again not to abandon your parish
churches. You will maintain the papacy in Rome. I tell you anew
that 666 now is in Rome. Do not judge My Son's Church by His pastors
in their human nature they can err, however, as legitimate legally
ordained Roman Catholic priests they will bring My Son to you
if you come seeking Him at the tabernacles of the world. The Mass
is valid, I say unto you! (vol II page 163)
JULY 15, 1978 - My children, we ask that all women during
the Holy sacrifice of the Mass have their heads covered. It is
demanded of all by the angels who assist My Son, who are there
at the consecration and the reception of the Eucharist. It is
not because of custom that this is asked of you, but because the
angels who demand proper deportment during the Holy Sacrifice,
are present and watch the Eucharist. (vol II page 171)
It is a defiant act, My children, that women no longer cover their
heads at the Holy Sacrifice of the Mass. They will not obey, for
they cannot understand that man must not change the wording of
the Bible. Man and the Hierarchy must not change the wording of
the Bible to suit mankind's instincts. No! The Hierarchy must
lead the sheep upon the road to Heaven through the plan of the
Eternal Father, and this plan has been written in His good Book,
the Bible. If you choose to strike out on your own and form, a
new Bible and a new way, you are doomed to disappointment and
destruction. And worst of all, it will be soul destruction! (vol
II page 171,172)
SEPTEMBER 13, 1978 - Pray, My children, a constant vigilance
of prayer must be kept throughout your country and the world.
Do not abandon My Son is His Church. Do not be deluded by those
who call the Mass invalid. My Son is there. He does not want the
doors to close in His Houses, His Church, for He is the door.
Though robbers and thieves often enter, He is still the door.
Come and seek Him in His House. You will not be abandoned, My
children. Only the man of sin shall be given over to a reprobate
sense............You must keep in your hearts the knowledge of
the true priesthood of My Son. The steps for obtaining Holy Orders
must be followed. They have been developed through heavenly guidance
for reason. No women must enter onto the holy place of the Sacrifice.
(vol II page 190)
JULY 25, 1979 - I say unto you as your Mother that the
Eternal Father is most displeased by the manner in which you conduct
yourselves, O clergy, and also all laymen, the manner in which
you conduct yourselves during the Holy Sacrifice of My Son. Less
and less respect and honor is being given to the Eucharist. (vol
II page 233)
AUGUST 14, 1981 - Do not judge My Son's House, His Church
by the man, though he is a representative; legal, a legal representative
of My Son, in His House. He is but a human in his nature. But
during the time that My Son comes to you, this man will be used
through the Holy Spirit, regardless of the state of his human
nature, be it sin or a saint; be it a sinner or one who has led
even those astray; at the time that My Son comes in the Consecration,
He shall not turn aside from you, My Son. Therefore, you cannot
say the Mass is invalid. This had brought great sorrow to Our
hearts, for many left the fold on this matter. (vol II page 292)
JUNE 30, 1984 - My Son's heart is bleeding because of the
manner in which His Mass is being celebrated, with neither honor
nor sacrifice. My Son is not pleased with the manner in which
His Body and Blood is being given to all of the humans upon earth.
Communion in the hand has not been, and will not be, accepted
by Heaven. This is a sacrilege in the eyes of the Eternal Father,
and must not be continued, for you only add to your punishment
when you continue on in the ways that have been found to be unpleasing
to the Eternal Father. (vol II page 408)
...Any country that allows homosexuals to roam and to seduce the
young shall be destroyed. Any country that has defamed My Son
in the Holy Sacrifice of the Mass will be destroyed. (vol II page
410)
JULY 1, 1985 (MSG) - Veronica: Jesus is not pleased with
the manner in which the clergy are carrying out their vocations,
and, also, the Mass. Jesus wishes that the Old Mass be returned
to wipe out many of the errors that have crept in since the New
Mass has started.
MAY 17, 1986 (MSG) - Now, My child, you have been much
concerned about My appearance in another country, Egypt. Yes,
My child, you do not understand all. Saint Demayana is a Coptic
Orthodox Church, My child, and I must say; though My heart grieves
because they are not with Rome at this time, they will join in
the future. But at this time the only thing that eases, My heart
is the knowledge that they have kept the Faith, as they know it.
In that Church, My child, the Coptics, which are few in Egypt,
they are devout. They do not rush through the service of the Holy
Sacrifice of the Mass, where My Son, daily, gives Himself to you.
They are few in number but devout. ..............I must tell you,
My child and My children, that they have suffered persecution
throughout the years. I came there this time, My child, to try
to draw together those about them who seek to persecute them;
the Moslems, and others, the Arabs. This is going on throughout
the world.
OCTOBER 2, 1987 (MSG) - I ask this of you as your God:
In the Holy Sacrifice that I left with you, I did not ask for
women to be upon the altar, nor try to be a high priestess. They
carry this on in the churches of satan; therefore, it shall not
be carried on in My Church. ............When I had the Last Supper
with the Apostles, My Mother was not present. If I had it in My
power from the Eternal Father to make a priestess, I would surely
have chosen My Mother; but, no, there were no women present at
the first Dedication.
MASS: MINISTERS, EXTRA-ORDINARY
AUGUST 21, 1975 - Pastors, no hands, other than those consecrated;
only, duly ordained priests shall give the Host to others.........Better
that you spend more time consummating your role as the representatives
of Christ than joining the world. The extra-ordinary ministers
have become a farce! (vol I page 405)
MASS, BLACK - See Satanists: Black Mass
MEDALS, HOLY - See Sacramentals: Medals
MEDIAS: RADIOS/TELEVISION/NEWSPAPERS/LITERATURE
V O L
U M E I
MAY 19, 1971 - Satan has placed his disciples in your schools,
your means of communication, all have been infiltrated! You can
readily see, My children, how far he has progressed to destroy.
We are gathering Our armies from Heaven, yes, We are watching
and will join in the eventual combat for My Mother's Heart will
heal when We triumphantly remove the evil one from among you!!
(vol I page 27)
JUNE 8, 1972 - Many agents of hell have infiltrated into
every part of your country, you schools, your government, your
medias of entertainment. Where shall you go but to stay within
yourself and pray that you do not be enticed into the web. (vol
I page 54)
APRIL 6, 1974 - You have, upon your earth, many societies
of satan. They have monopolized the industry of your world and
the medias of communication. They have done the work of satan
well. This was allowed by the Father because of your unwillingness
to turn from your sin. (vol I page 185)
APRIL 13, 1974 - You must warn and caution the children
of earth not to abandon the Vicar of Christ. The enemies about
him seek to set the pace for the downfall. They will bring into
print through the media of your world; your newspapers, your radios
and the agent that you have, known as television; grave errors,
misquotes, misconceptions and lies. Know now that these lies were
created by satan, for satan is the father of all liars, My child.
He is the epitome of all deceit and deception. (vol I page 191)
DECEMBER 28, 1974 - Children wander without a goal, My
child, they have lost their way! They seek the Father but without
counsel they will find satan! Satan has set up a false road to
capture your children! Satan has many agents now in your government
and in your schools and in all the medias of your life; your newspapers
and your entertainment medias. (vol I page 316)
MARCH 18, 1975 - Satan roams your world, He has many agents
in all the medias, My children. Hearts are hardened, ears are
deafened, sight is blinded! Sight of the physical body means
nothing, My child. It is the light that has been taken from the
heart, the soul of mankind, that brings him to destruction. (vol
I page 338)
JUNE 18, 1975 - The newspapers of the enemies of God, magazines
of obscenity, ways of recreation and entertainment, My child,
must be cleansed. The medias have all now been given to satan
in your country and most of the nations on your earth. Recognize
the faces of evil about you. They come to you as angels of light
with ravenous hearts. (vol I page 379)
SEPTEMBER 6, 1975 - The world shall be witness to suffering
far greater than mankind has ever experienced. There will be father
against son, mother against daughter; brother against sister;
and brothers against brother. Mass insanity shall predominate,
so great is the power of satan, as mankind has given himself to
the world, the flesh, and the devil. You will not make judgment
upon your present events because your news medias, My children,
have also joined the father of all liars, satan. (vol I page 408)
NOVEMBER 20, 1975 - You must not seek novelty in My Son's
House. Many abominations sadden My Heart. There is great lack
of respect during the Holy Service, My children. My Son's House,
His House throughout your earth, have become meeting places of
demons.(vol I page 439)
MAY 29, 1976 - My children, you must read all periodicals
and news by medias being prudent and scrupulous. You do not receive
the truth from atheists, My children. ...........Do not accept
as fact much that is printed in your news medias and books, My
children. Pray before you read that you may receive the light
to separate fact from lies and fallacies. Under a controlled state,
you will only be given what they, the Masters, choose to give
to you to read and absorb. That is human control. However, it
is a sad fact that when they control the human they enter upon
the soul of many. (vol I page 494)
SEPTEMBER 7, 1976 - Your news media, My children, are controlled,
as other means of communication. You must be very careful what
you read now, for you will often be deluded. Much that is credited
as coming from the Holy Father is not coming from him, but from
those about him who are now in full control. (vol I page 531)
OCTOBER 6, 1976 - O My children, persevere in your present
days and the few days left in earth's time. I assure you, My children,
if you carry your cross with resignation and maintain a truth,
maintain the Faith, be faithful to your Vicar, Pope Paul, in Rome,
but learn to recognize the faces of evil that surround him. Much,
most now, My children, of your medias are controlled by the evil
ones. It will take man of great knowledge and light to fully
be able to understand what is true, truth, what is fact, or what
has been made fiction by the enemies of your God. It is a known
fact that now, My children, which are fully controlled by the
Grand Masters, and those who are seeking to bring about the one
world religion and the one rule of government, a measure of enslaving
all of mankind under the forces of antichrist. (vol I page 548)
NOVEMBER 22, 1976 - I caution you in the days ahead to
read all periodicals and approach your news medias with a critical
eye, for you seldom will receive now the truth in print or through
your news medias, My children, which are fully controlled by the
Grand Masters, and those who are seeking to bring about the one
world religion and the one rule of government, a measure of enslaving
all of mankind under the forces of antichrist. The man of perdition
666 is in Rome. The man of perdition 666 is in every country of
earth now. Every nation is polluted by the errors of the forces
of darkness. When the world receives the baptism of fire, there
will be few left. (vol I page 563)
V O L
U M E I I
FEBRUARY 10, 1977 - Your news medias are corrupted, as
are many other medias in your country and the world. Man who has
been given the Faith, the true Faith, shall recognize the fallacies,
the errors, and the lies that come out of these medias. Know,
My children, that in a world of deep darkness of spirit, your
Faith is the only truth. No man can build another for you. (vol
II page 25)
MAY 14, 1977 - My child, your country's leader knows what
is happening. The truth cannot be told in full through your medias
and your newspapers. In the direction from his God, many leaders
shall go about pleading for peace. Many leaders know the extent
of the buildup of armaments throughout the world, the nuclear
destruction that shall be set upon mankind. (vol II page 38)
AUGUST 13, 1977 - He is here. He has entered upon your
country in 1975. Your children have been victims to him. The spread
of drugs was for reason; to break down the morals and to give
your children over to satan. Your children have been desecrated
in black mass. Your children have been desecrated in the schools
and the governments by the government leaders who do not care.
(vol II page 75)
OCTOBER 6, 1977 - In your country, the United States, and
North America, there are many agents of hell loosed now. They
have entered into all of your medias of communication. My child,
I must caution you again that the telephone is a diabolical, mechanical
instrument of satan. Beware! (vol II page 94)
NOVEMBER 1, 1977 - Satan, the prince of darkness, the master
of deceit, now controls every media in your country and the countries
throughout the world. As he was a murderer and liar from the beginning,
so he is still a murderer and liar. (vol II page 98)
NOVEMBER 19, 1977 - My children, you must retain tradition;
you must retain a firm foundation of your faith by keeping all
of the good publications. Do not accept the changes that have
been made by satan to seduce your souls. (vol II page 103)
MAY 20, 1978 - Much that you read in your medias of communication,
press, and your infernal machine, the television, has been monitored
by the enemies of your God. The arms of the octopus are reaching
out to ensnare the world, bringing you closer to a war that will
end all wars with the destruction of flesh upon earth. (vol II
page 150,151)
SEPTEMBER 28, 1978 - My children, you must be very careful
now what you read in your news medias because your country is
controlled. Most nations of your earth now are controlled by the
forces of evil. Before you make any judgment, My children, in
matters of faith and morals, you will read your good Bible. And
do not accept any changes in the Book of Life and Love. (vol II
page 196)
NOVEMBER 25, 1978 - There is a group in the United States
and the world, a group that started many years ago, calling itself
the Illuminati, coming from the word "light bearer."
Naturally, My children, this light that they bear stands for Lucifer,
and as such they have gone through the world secretly known as
Luciferians. They have brought into your country, the United States,
and your neighbor Canada, a group of witchcraft practices. Well
have they laid their plan to destroy your children with drugs,
using your school systems, your medias of communication, your
newspapers, your television, your radios; every means of communication
has been infiltrated by the members and sub-members of the Illuminati,
a conglomeration of individuals and powers and principalities
throughout the world, and banking systems. As you well know, My
children, money has always been the root of all evil, and many
have sold their souls to get to the head. (vol II page 205)
MAY 23, 1979 - Unknown to you and many, the leaders of
the world's powers are gathering armaments to set them in motion
for a great war. The news medias of the people do not carry the
truth of this terrible crisis in your world. (vol II page 213)
Do you know, My children, that you must look for the light from
Heaven to know the truth. The medias of the world are controlled
now; you will know nothing of the actual factual truth. You will
be given only what those in command wish you to know. (vol II
page 215)
JULY 25, 1979 - As the darkness deepens upon your earth,
your world will appear to many like insanity has set upon it;
murders will increase, accidents called "freaks of nature",
accidents that are not accidents. Children, will continue to rise
up against their parents, being encouraged by their schools, their
teachers, their news medias and all the medias that have been
well-planned to seduce the souls of your children. And the master
behind these medias is Lucifer and his agents from hell walking
now in human form. (vol II page 234)
AUGUST 14, 1979 - Man now is setting up upon earth a one-world
government and a one-world religion! But it means enslavement
of the masses and the destruction of faith. I have told you over
and over, counseled you in the past, to not be influenced by your
medias, newspapers and that infernal box, the television. (vol
II page 241)
NOVEMBER 24, 1979 - My children, I beg of you as your Mother;
I come to you from Heaven as a Mediatrix between God and man.
You must listen to Me now. I warned you in the past that your
medias of communication are controlled. The only guide you will
have now are the messages from Heaven, given through various seers,
and other miraculous manifestations from the Eternal Father to
man. Many will be martyred in the days ahead. Heaven can be gained
through martyrdom. (vol II page 264)
AUGUST 14, 1981 - Do not give way, My children, to the
medias that have lulled and dulled your senses in repeating to
you of the safety of your Vicar. I must warn you at this time
that your Vicar is not safe. There will be another attempt upon
his life in the city of Rome, brought on by the red forces. My
child, grieve not because all is controlled and allowed by the
Eternal Father. ...........The second part of My last counsel
with you, My child, must remain a secret. You will pray, you will
all pray a constant vigilance of prayer for your Vicar, Pope John
Paul II. You must beware of your medias, even those who have labeled
themselves Catholic, Roman Catholic. Infiltration, My children,
is everywhere now. (vol II page 295)
MARCH 18, 1983 - For a nation that has received much, this
nation, the United States of America, has become depraved through
its medias, the newspapers, the motion picture, the television,
all agents of hell and of satan. (vol II page 378)
MARCH 26, 1983 - And I, as your Mother, beg intercession
through Jesus to the Eternal Father and the Holy Ghost to spare
you these terrible punishments. If there is a need for more victim
souls, let them be satisfied to know that they have been warned.
(vol II page 383)
JUNE 18, 1982 - Man was created to live peacefully. Man
was created to know his God, and in this manner to have a world
that is not a paradise, but one in which man could live in peace
and security but now all of the leaders of the world run about
and they say it is peace, it is security. Their words are like
two prongs from the mouth, they say those words, but then they
turn their backs and they are busy getting ready for a major invasion
of the United States and Canada. (vol II page 382)
JUNE 30, 1984 - Do not be misled by your news medias. They
are not telling you the full truth. There is much going on that
is kept hidden from you. Your country, the United States of America,
and also Canada, has been invaded from within. The enemy has worked
their way in well. (vol II page 409)
OCTOBER 5, 1985 (MSG) - My child, I want you to do all
you can to foster the return of morality and morality to the medias;
and, also, to those you love; your neighbors, your children. And
do not be affrighted or flee from the sinner, for he, too, can
be saved by your effort and your prayers. As this child was born,
so he must return; a simple child, to the Eternal Father. If you
remember, My child, the lessons from Theresa; yes, St. Theresa,
you will remember that it is a simple way to Heaven; if you accept
the Eternal Father into your heart, you will always be His children
of love.
JUNE 6, 1987 (MSG) - My child, the road to peace has been
given to the world. You must write and implore your Holy Father
in Rome to make known the full message of Fatima. There is no
time to be wasted! Your country, My child, is in great distress,
though your medias have camouflaged this from you. Your country
will meet with a great distress and loss of life in the Gulf,
the Persian Gulf. No, My child, you cannot accept as full knowledge
all that the media impart to you; for they, too, are under control.................My
child, there is also one thing I wish to discuss with you for
the world, for all of the world's children to know, how Heaven
feels about their diabolical search for life in a test tube. Yes,
My child, I know this shocks you, but you are fully aware of what
is going on. Your news medias seem to enjoy putting these evils
before your eyes and your ears and your readings. Yes, We frown
upon surrogate mothers. We shall not tolerate the making of children
from one to the other.
JUNE 18, 1987 (MSG) - You understand, My children, that
what you read in your newspapers are not fully the truth. They
are, also, guarded well by a group named the Illuminati. They
are active, My children, in the United States, and all the nations
of the world, especially in France.
MARCH 18, 1989 (MSG) - Another area that shall be shaken
will be California, My child. There is a great split in the earth
that is widening. This is not generally being given to you in
your news tabloids. They are trying to lull you to complacency.
We have given you the road away from these disasters, and that
road is only guided by prayers, penance, and atonement.
MEDIA: LITERATURE/BOOKS
JULY 1, 1971 - You will find the books containing beauties
of prose and keep these, My children, soon they will be taken
from your counters. (vol I page 29)
APRIL 1, 1972 - My children, make your homes a fortress
against the evil that enshrouds your earth. Gather the works of
Truth into your home, even if you have to search the world. You
will find little trace of truth in these times. Find the old books,
My children, and keep them as Treasures of Truth. (vol I page
49)
SEPTEMBER 13, 1973 - Your children must be returned to
learning the Scriptures of the prophets. All parents must gather
their children and remove them from the agents of satan. Bring
the truth to your children through the Book of Life, the writings
of the prophets of old, the Bible. This legacy was left to man
to guide him in his daily life. Instead, man has chosen to read
and absorb, to destroy his eternal soul with books of evil, corruption,
blasphemy, atheism all soul-destroyers, destroyers of purity of
heart and body. (vol I page 131,132)
DECEMBER 31, 1973 - Parents must bring into their homes
reading matter that brings their knowledge of God to their children.
The Father is much grieved that satan has entered into many homes
and the souls of many children in this manner by the placement
of books of degradation within the homes, many by their parents.
(vol I page 156)
FEBRUARY 10, 1974 - The books of truth have been removed
from among you. You must read the lives of the founders of My
Son's House, and those great Saints who cry in Heaven for vengeance
upon satan and his agents, n-o-w, for many souls are being taken
into the abyss. (vol I page 166)
JUNE 15, 1974 - My child, satan has a most terrible plan.
You must make it known to the world that he will try to discredit
all those whom We have chosen in the past to bring to you the
truth. You will gather, My child, all the copies of the books
that are being discarded from your shelves, the books of life
and love, the books of truth. Many are being burned, for they
have been replaced by books that have been written by the agents
of Hell. Hurry, My child, rescue these books, for soon they will
be few among you. Read them well and they will be forever in your
hearts. Direct your children in the light. Do not allow them to
fall into the darkness of error. (vol I page 215)
SEPTEMBER 7, 1974 - My child, the warnings were given in
your past earth life by many for the spirit of truth was given
to many to leave with you but these memories; these words of truth
and the parchments on which they were written are being removed
from among you and replaced by the writings from hell! I repeat
'hell' for, My child, We do not hear the word being used often.
Hell and purgatory and the Kingdom of God, why have you forgotten
these words? The enemies of God have done their work well among
you! Come out of the darkness! (vol I page 253)
SEPTEMBER 13, 1974 - Much of
your Faith in graces and indulgences, My child, they have been
removed. Gather the books given to you in the past. Though mankind
has set himself above his God to remove these from among you,
know that in the will of the Father, they have not been removed.
You will receive all the numerous graces of indulgences as directed
by your good leaders of old. Pray a constant vigilance of prayer.
(vol I page 262)
DECEMBER 31, 1974 - You will gather the Books of Truth
that still remain with you. Save them, My child, and store them
well, for the books that your children receive now are created
by satan. There are still many that can be gathered as treasures
of truth. Look, My child, in your stores. Many are being thrown
from the schools as they shutter their doors. Gather these books
and keep them, My children, you will need them in the future.
(vol I page 323)
SEPTEMBER 7, 1976 - The good books of truth are still among
you. Pray for the light, My children, and be guided so that you
may not fall into error, for man is now creating a church of man,
and it will not be the Church of man, and it will not be the Church
of truth and the light, the Church of My Son, Jesus. Man is bending
His cross to suit his carnal human nature. (vol I page 530)
NOVEMBER 1, 1976 - My child and My children, you see all
about you the souls who suffered through trial upon earth and
gained their eternal reward. They stand before you and all mankind
as examples to be followed. You must follow them in order to reach
the Eternal Kingdom, My children. The knowledge of their existence,
the story of their lives, are being removed from among you for
a diabolical reason, My children. That is why My Mother and I
caution you again to retain all of the old books, the publications,
for your children. Do not discard them for the modernized versions,
for they are of the truth. (vol I page 554)
FEBRUARY 1, 1977 - Read, My children, your books that I
have pleaded with you to gather before they are destroyed. Do
not give yourselves over to the publications of the antichrist
in your world. As you pray, you will ask the Spirit of Light to
enlighten you in knowledge that you may know when there is error,
that you may recognize the truth, and that you shall not fall
victim to the errors of your world. (vol II page 20)
DECEMBER 7, 1977 - You must keep all of the books of truth
that are fast being cast aside even in My Son's House upon earth,
His Church. (vol II page 108)
FEBRUARY 10, 1978 - There are many good books still left
upon earth, though they bear a label of years before. Read them,
My children, they will be a great comfort to you. The light of
truth will not be extinguished in the world, though it becomes
a glimmer. When I return, My children, shall I, do you think that
I shall come to earth and find even a flicker of faith left in
the hearts of My children? (vol II page 124)
MAY 23, 1979 - My children, remove from your households
all secular writings; read only your Bible, the Book of love and
life. Your children are being exposed to mind control. Your children
are being taught to sin, to hate, to murder, the elderly and aged.
Father against son, mother against daughter; strife within the
household, as satan seeks to claim the souls of the young. (vol
II page 213)
JUNE 9, 1979 - I know, Veronica, I know that you are in
deep distress over the events of the past week in your country.
However, I say to you all, you must all constantly pray, for the
battle is coming slowly to a close, and Lucifer has now concerted
devious ways to try to destroy all that remains upon the earth
for the salvation of souls. And that, My child and My children,
includes all manner of books and knowledge given throughout the
ages of man. (vol II page 224)
AUGUST 21, 1985 (MSG) - I, also, must give to you at this
time another fact of your lives upon earth. You as parents, mothers,
fathers, must guard your doors well and rule; take discipline
in the lives of your children, for they will bring much sorrow
to your hearts as they grow; they grow in a world that has been
given to satan. When your child opens his home, the door, he will
face the agents of hell loosed upon earth to reclaim his soul.
Protect your children, My children; be sure that as a parent you
do not fall down in your duties to teach your children, for many
are now receiving schooling that is based on atheism. Their books
and manuals you do not read, My children. You must as parents
be a safeguard, a home of holiness for your children, or they
will perish; and your parent's tears shall flow upon the world,
crying, too late, too late.
MEDIA: BOOKS: PORNOGRAPHY
MAY 10, 1972 - There are many among you who do not read
the Book of Life and Love (Bible). You prefer to read soul destroyers,
therefore I admonish you to keep your mind clean by avoiding evil
reading. The Bible, without new change, will guide you on the
path with My Son. (vol I page 51)
JULY 15, 1973 - Man would find his way to the Kingdom if
he would cast aside the soul-destroyers that he now has in his
home, which destroy not only his soul but the souls of innocent
children. For the love of money, these soul-destroyers flood your
earth. (vol I page 115)
OCTOBER 2, 1973 - My child, many of the objects of God
have been cast aside to be replaced by soul-destroyers. The soul-destroyers
must be removed from within the homes, the schools, and the streets
of your country, and especially the foul dens of evil promoted
by the prince of darkness in your cities. Your children are the
principal object for seduction by satan. (vol I page 137)
MAY 30, 1974 - Your city is a cesspool of degradation.
Your city shall not escape the punishment planned by the Father.
This punishment, this great Chastisement shall be meted in measure
of the numbers of countless murders committed within your city
and the cities of the world; cesspools of sin! (vol I page 205)
DECEMBER 28, 1974 - We are much grieved in Heaven to view
the abominations being committed in your homes! The darkness has
set into many homes! All parents must open their hearts and look
into their homes objectively. Have you set your house in order?
Have you brought the knowledge of your God to your children? Have
you cast out of your home the abominations placed there by satan?
The box of evil, your televisions! The books of degradation and
perversion: pornography! Yes, My child, do not be startled! Many
parents read these abominable books and set a bad example to their
children! (vol I page 315)
JULY 25, 1975 - You must remove the reading matter, the
books, filled with obscenities, pornography, you call it, My child;
errors and degradation, soul destructors. You must close your
schools! Remove the teachers who promote the destruction of souls!
(vol I page 387)
AUGUST 14, 1975 - My child, you must set up a task force
to stop the waves of evil in pornography that is engulfing your
country and the world. Action is needed! There are many true spirits
who will help you in this fight. It is truly a battle of the spirits!
(vol I page 398)
AUGUST 21, 1975 - Remove from your homes the corruption
of souls, the pornography; the infernal box, your television;
and the destructor of; souls, modesty and purity, the nakedness
of the body. Parents you shall be judged for the destruction by
permissiveness, of your children's souls. Clothe them in goodness,
holiness, and piety and make Modesty a way of life for the young.
(vol I page 405)
SEPTEMBER 13, 1975 - You must now, My child, speak out
the truth. Your country must send from its shores the coalition,
the United Nations. Your country must purge itself of the many
seekers of fortune at the expense of a loss of the souls of thousands,
those who seek worldly gain and riches by bringing into your nation
corrupters of souls and mind destroyers; pornography and drugs,
My child. (vol I page 414)
MAY 28, 1977 - ..........the children should symbolize
the spirit of innocence and purity and faith; but We see the most
vilest of acts being committed against the purity of children.
And I say unto you before that a man receives a millstone abut
his head and is cast into the sea than to defile the young!......Reams
of pornography! Abuse to children! Ages almost from the cradle!
I say unto you, you have called down upon yourselves a just
punishment from your God! (vol II page 49)
JUNE 16, 1977 - My children, you must separate what is
important and what is not. The spirit is your eternal flame. You
will guide by it, My children. Nourish your spirit and not your
human bodies. Too much time is spent in amusement of the human
body, seeking entertainment that is being created by satan to
poison your minds. As I have counseled you in the past, your medias
of entertainment are polluted. Your children must be protected
against this pollution in pornography and exploitation of sex.
...............O parents, you have the greatest battle now to
keep the souls of your children from contamination. The eyes are
the mirror of the soul, so protect your children's eyes, watch
what they read and what they look upon. Discipline your children
and you shall not cry later as parents. (vol II page 58)
JULY 25, 1979 - Take from your homes diabolical literature.
It's an abomination in the eyes of your God for parents to have
pornography in their homes. They warp the minds of the young and
shut the Kingdom of Heaven from them; the doors remain closed.
(vol II page 235)
MAY 28, 1983 - O My children, speak to your pastors, speak
to the bishops, the Hierarchy, and let them know that their Mother
is weeping for them. They do not know what they are doing, or
they do not care of the consequences because they have lost their
faith and no longer have they received graces to keep them from
the abyss. I repeat again man shall be left to himself, because
the Spirit will not remain within him if he becomes a purveyor
of such evil and sin as the corruption of the children. Pornography
and others, all vile natures of mankind, this hits, My children,
to the very core of children on earth, their being. We place upon
the parents a far greater measure and responsibility toward their
children than We can place on the schools or the government. No,
parents must now guard their children or they will weep when it
is too late. (vol II page 388)
OCTOBER 5, 1985 (MSG) - O My children, My Mother's heart
is now torn asunder. I hear those words that are making a mockery
of Myself, My children. Yes, My child Veronica, I am referring
to the pornographic movie called the, 'The Hail Mary.'....................My
Son has wanted and wished that direct action be taken against
those who have had even a small measure in partnership with those
who have sought to blaspheme My name, and, also, to cut My Heart
asunder. .......You will tell mankind that the sins of the flesh
shall send many souls to hell. My child, the need for materialism
is wrong. And the need for modernizing the world and My Son's
Church is wrong. And passing over the grievous sin of immorality
and, also, pornography, and all the other evils, are placed under
the heading of humanism; even accepting without a frown, or proper
attention to a sin, in accepting the aftermath of AIDS, received
through inhuman relationships. I say 'inhuman' because those relationships
are not from God, My children, but they are from satan. Homosexuality
shall always be condemned because it is against the nature of
man; and it is a violation of all human morality, and shall not
be tolerated by the Eternal Father in the Trinity.
MEDIAS: NEWSPAPERS
AUGUST 21 1974 - Your newspapers, even those who call themselves
Catholic, have fallen. They have now been given to the enemies
of God, for when they seek to destroy the Church of the Son of
God, they are enemies of God and they are of the antichrist. (vol
I page 248)
JULY 15, 1976 - My child, you are witnessing the many who
shall die in the great War. Already the forces are working to
the consummation of the great World War, My child. Do not be deceived
by the editorials, by your newspapers that have now been controlled
by these forces, for you will only be given the knowledge of what
they want you to know. It is often concealing the truth. (vol
I page 516)
OCTOBER 6, 1978 - Needless to say, My child and My children,
your newspapers and medias of communication are controlled. Yes,
a man of dark secrets and spirit will be placed upon the seat
of Peter. Those who have the light know a true Vicar, but those
who are in darkness will work for Lucifer. (vol II page 198)
JULY 1, 1985 (MSG) - The United States of America is fast
approaching on the start of the Third World War. My children,
your newspapers and your medias give no account of these secret
missions. There are men going from the State's Department, back
and forth, hinder and yon, looking for peace, peace, where there
is no peace; and peace where there shall be no peace, unless they
follow the directions of the Eternal Father and the Messages given
from Heaven in the past years; not alone on these grounds, My
children, of Bayside and Flushing Meadows, but also to various
seers, young and old, about the world. The world is crying, peace,
peace, and there will be no peace, unless the world will recognize
My warnings of caution from years ago in earth's time, and they
do something about it.
OCTOBER 2, 1987 (MSG) - My child and My children, listen
to Me carefully. Guard your children and those in your family
with your sacramentals, the Rosary, if you have no other sacramental;
if you receive a brown scapular and a crucifix, place a Rosary
about your children's necks. They must be guarded in these dire
times. How urgent is it? All you have to do, My children, is hear
the daily news and you know of the murders of the young and innocent
that are being perpetrated by the agents of satan.
OCTOBER 6, 1992 (MSG) - And do not be swerved by the works
of mankind. Because what is coming out in your press is controlled,
My children, throughout your country and the world. You must pray
to be enlightened, so that you will not be deluded by the forces
of evil loosed in your country and other nations of the world.
MEDIA: TELEVISION
V O
L U M E I
APRIL 13, 1974 - You must warn and caution the children
of earth not to abandon the Vicar of Christ. The enemies about
him seek to set the pace for the downfall. They will bring into
print through the media of your world; your newspapers, your radios
and the agent that you have, known as television; grave errors,
misquotes, misconceptions and lies. Know now that these lies were
created by satan, for satan is the father of all liars, My child.
He is the epitome of all deceit and deception. (vol I page 191)
SEPTEMBER 28, 1974 - Take yourselves from those diabolical
machines that you cast your eyes on daily......Yes, My child,
they have been created by satan to seduce your minds. Remove them
from your homes for many of your children will be seduced by them
and be forever lost to the Kingdom of Heaven. ...............I
admonish you about this diabolical machine, the television, for
you may consider it as a mechanical agent of satan now, but in
the future, My child, it will be used to brainwash your children
into submission to evil. All manner of evil and degradation will
be portrayed on this diabolical machine. Remove them from among
you. They will expound the pleasures of the flesh and the degeneration
of your generation. (vol I page 269)
OCTOBER 6, 1974 - There has been a question, My child,
of that diabolical machine setting in your house. We wish that
you cover it, or remove it from your living room. It is a tool
of satan. Remove it! It brings corruption into your household.
Remove it at once! Better that you take it to the ax................No,
My child, no excuses. You do not need this tool of satan to enlighten
you. We will send these lights from Heaven. Remove it at once,
your television!...........It is a sinister tool of the devil.
You do not know what your children are watching. Day by day, daily
in their lives, the filth and corruption is put into their ears
and their sight! The eyes are the mirror of the soul. Guard your
children's eyes well! Monitor your sets. Better that you cast
them from your household. Remember, My child, out of sight, out
of mind. That is why Our statues have been removed among you and
replaced y the edifices of satan. Out of sight, out of mind! And
how many have My Son in their hearts today? How many of your children
are being misled? How many have already fallen into the abyss?
Woe! Woe to the parent who does not heed My words and act upon
them! You will be crying tears of anguish, gnashing your teeth!
Too late! Too late! (vol I page 282)
NOVEMBER 1, 1974 - Much, My child, is passing into the
hearts of mankind from the diabolical machines in the homes. How
many times, My child, have I begged that all remove these machines
from their homes, the televisions. They vomit filth! They corrupt
the minds of the young and old. They are the boxes created by
satan to invade your homes! They have invaded your homes! Take
the ax to them! (vol I page 287)
DECEMBER 28, 1974 - We are much grieved in Heaven to see
the abominations being committed in your homes! The darkness has
set into many homes! All parents must open their hearts and look
into their homes objectively. Have you set your house in order?
Have you brought the knowledge of your God to your children? Have
you cast out of your home the abominations placed there by satan!
The box of evil, your televisions! The books of degradation and
perversion; pornography! Yes, My child, do not be startled! Many
parents read these abominable books and set a bad example to their
children! (vol I page 315)
DECEMBER 31, 1974 - We ask that you remove the diabolical
machines from your homes, the televisions! This is necessary for
many parents have not monitored their televisions and permit their
children to be destroyed in mind, body and spirit, by this diabolical
machine created by satan. (vol I page 321)
AUGUST 21, 1975 - Remove from your homes the corruption
of souls, the pornography; the infernal box, your television;
and the destructor of; souls, modesty and purity, the nakedness
of the body. Parents you shall be judged for the destruction by
permissiveness, of your children's souls. Clothe them in goodness,
holiness, and piety and make Modesty a way of life for the young.
(vol I page 405)
DECEMBER 27, 1975 - I have many times cautioned you and
all of My children against the use of the diabolical machine,
your television. There will be no excuses accepted for having
these in your presence. They are destroyers of the soul and corrupters
of the mind. They take you from your moments of meditation; they
take you from reading the words of the Good Book your Bible. They
present to you a way of life that is not akin to the way of your
God. (vol I page 417)
MARCH 18, 1976 - We look into many homes and We find no
close bond of unity. And why? Because you prefer to keep a diabolical
machine in your homes, those televisions! These, My children,
are all creations of satan. The family does not pray together.
The mother does not bring the knowledge of God to her children.
The father seeks his way in the world, gathering money and material
things that are all passing. Cleanse your homes! Start anew! Work
together for your reward in the Eternal Kingdom. Your house must
be now a fortress against the evil that surrounds you. (vol I
page 477)
OCTOBER 2, 1976 - Too few even pray for members of their
own household. And why? Because the damnable machine of satan,
television, has been used now to destroy the solidarity of a home.
It has come in and separated communication between the individuals
of the home. (vol I page 543)
V O L
U M E I I
APRIL 2, 1977 - My Mother did well to warn you not to be
deceived by the stories in your news medias through your communications
of the box, the satanic delusion in the box in your homes, the
televisions. I assure you, My children, when My Mother warned
you of this diabolical box, it was for reason. It has become the
center of brainwashing for your children, and it will become the
mechanical instrument for controlling your mind. At this time
I will not go further into details but watch what your scientific
man shall command to destroy his fellow man. (vol II page 32)
MAY 18, 1977 - My children, filth is placed before your
eyes; filth is taped in by the infernal machines of your television,
and filth is being brought into your schools and all of your medias
of communication! (vol II page 43)
MAY 13, 1978 - My children, you must exercise your God-given
sense and knowledge. I warned you in the past that all medias
are now controlled. Your children, by manner of the infernal boxes
in your homes, the televisions, are being now schooled to kill,
to sin. And many parents shall be murdered by their own children!
And why? Because you all failed to recognize what is happening
before your very eyes; your children are being programmed to kill.
A steady diet of violence will lead to the spirit being dulled
and the sensitivity being dulled until even murder is condoned,
with all manner of rationalizing for the commission of this sin
against your God and all mankind. (vol II page 145)
MAY 20, 1978 - My children, I caution you once more to
watch carefully the lives and recreation procedures of your children.
The infernal machine, your television, must be monitored in your
homes, if you must have them. My Mother had suggested for your
welfare, not forcefully but in obedience, that you remove these
infernal machines. However, as parents you will monitor them for
your children. And woe to the parents that neglect this duty,
for many parents shall be slain by the young. (vol II page 151)
M E S
S A G E S
OCTOBER 5, 1985 (MSG) - My child and My children, I bring
you sad news, but it is the news that can cleanse many of their
present sins if they listen and learn by it. Death now is becoming
prevalent with wars, with droughts, with personal murders; murders
of the unborn, father against son, mother against daughter; all
manner of carnage being treated in the homes, and being conducted
in the homes of children; children who cannot longer be children
because by their viewing of the diabolical box, they are learning
to act as adults with the hearts but not with their heads.
MARCH 18, 1989 (MSG) - My parents of the world, I say unto
you, as your God: This will not be tolerated much longer. For
if you parents will not raise your children in the light, you
will raise them in darkness, and they will eventually rise up
and even kill you. There are many satanic institutions throughout
the world now that are waiting for your children. Are you going
to allow them to fall into their hands because you are too busy
elsewhere to watch your children? Are you turning them over to
the satanic tube, the television? Yes, My children, they are learning
to kill by the television. They are learning disrespect for the
parents. They laugh at you when you are not watching. That, My
children of the world, parents, your children are to be lost............Veronica:
Now I see a picture forming in the sky. It shows a terrible scene
on a television. It shows a young child butchering a cat. The
child watching this goes to the kitchen, takes out a large bread
knife, and, oh, My God! He's plunging it into the back of his
mother! Now the scene is becoming very dark; I don't see anything
else. It's ghastly! ................That, My child, is what is
happening now throughout the world. The children are taken over
by satan through this instrument of satan. Much good could be
gained if many will monitor their television sets, for their children's
minds are being seduced by satan. I repeat again: Your own children
will rise up against you and destroy your household. Murders are
abounding.
Cardinal, experts agree - TV harmful ------Incredibly, within
24 hours of Our Lord's important Message about TV, John Cardinal
O'Connor, the archbishop of New York, echoed a similar warning.
The New York Daily News reported that the Cardinal told 5,000
worshippers at St. Patrick's Cathedral: "Television is one
of the most difficult elements of the American culture we have
to deal with. The total change in the presentation of life style,
the incredible emphasis on materialism and the sheer pornography
that young people are exposed to, they certainly were never exposed
to with such intensity."............And who are these people
presenting these ideas to our children? Pope Paul VI asked Father
Pedro Arrupe, the former Superior General of the Jesuits, to do
a study on the mass media. His research discovered that 90% of
the world's media is in the hands of militant atheists. TV, which
is at the forefront of the mass media, is in 96% of all homes.
It is watched an average of six hours a day. The U.S. News and
World Report stated: "Televised violence is so pervasive
that the average high school student by graduation day has seen
18,000 murders in 22,000 hours of television viewing; that's twice
as many hours as are spent in the classroom."
Furthermore, Jane Brody of the New York Tomes Service reported
that: "....more than 3,000 studios have linked violence on
television to increased aggression and violent behavior in children
and adolescents." Joseph R. Dominic, Ph.D., and Bradley S.
Greenberg Ph.D.,. of Michigan State University found that "the
greater the level of exposure to television violence, the more
the children were willing to use violence...." Dr. C. Everett
Koop, the Surgeon General, has declared that violence is the nation's
number one health problem. The Surgeon General said that the drastic
increase of homicide and suicide rates could be related to violence
on the tube. ...........We stress that all parents seriously act
upon Our Lord's powerful warning. Because if you don't, you may
be next to die an untimely death.
OCTOBER 2, 1989 (MSG) - St. Theresa: I come this evening
to ask my sisters who hear my message not to be taken over by
worldly pursuits. I agree fully with the nuns in the convents
that object to the television. No televisions should be in a holy
place.
JUNE 18, 1990 (MSG) - My child, you will also make it known
that We are not happy to see the world enter all of Our convents.
They discard the habits, they're no longer maidens of purity.
And I tell you, My children, that cannot be tolerated. Modernism
must not be a way of life for Our dedicated. Our nuns have to
have discipline, My children. Do not bring the world into the
convents. I ask that the convents remain free of all television
and radios, and return to their prayer life.
JUNE 18, 1991 (MSG) - Parents, I ask you now to get rid
of the infernal machines in your homes! I warned you through many
earth years that this will be a point of destruction for your
children. If you at least, I ask at least, which is the least
you can do, is to monitor what your children are seeing. Satan
has created the infernal tube. Heaven did not deem it to be in
the homes of the just.
JUNE 18, 1992 (MSG) - However, I say at this time that
all parents will be held responsible for the fall of their children's
souls. Do not expect them to leave your homes and to be taught
in light and truth, for the demons are raging now all about you.
All hell is opened wide now, and you know that means that the
onslaught is at hand. ...............Therefore, We ask all parents
to keep a steady hand on their children. Bar them from all the
insensitive acts being committed on the diabolical tube of satan,
your television. I ask if you cannot monitor your set, to remove
it immediately from your home, for your children will even resort
to murder if they continue to watch the programming.
MEDIATRIX - See Mary: Mother of God
MERCY, WORKS OF - See Corporal Works of Mercy
MIRACLE, GREAT
APRIL 14, 1973 - A glorious mystery will be sent upon earth
through the merciful love of a forgiving Father for His errant
children. However, this will be the final act to bring you back
before the cleansing with fire. (vol I page 95)
DECEMBER 24, 1973 - The Warning which will be sent upon
man must be effective, and in the mercy of the Father, a great
spectacle will then be placed in the sky for all to see. However,
the agents of hell will try to prove/disprove the hand of the
Father in this Miracle....Believe what you will see at Garabandal,
and turn back from your ways that have been created by satan.
Return to the Father; do penance and atonement, for your Chastisement
will soon follow upon the great spectacle. (vol I page 150,151)
The Father is of great heart that He may reach His children without
further intervention after the great Miracle. (vol I page 152.
JUNE 15, 1974 - .......the time grows short! Years or months,
My child, what difference is it that We give you the date? It
is only important that you be ready, for I can assure you, My
children, that the great Warning will come upon you at a a time
you least expect. And then, a prodigy of great proportion, in
the merciful heart of the Father you will receive a great light
from Heaven. Many in the world will reject this miracle, for they
have joined the forces of...........And after this if mankind
does not repent and change his ways, there will be sent upon him
the great destruction in two parts; the great war, that will take
from your earth one third of mankind; and then, the Ball of Redemption,
the second third! And what is left, My child, O sorrow of great
sorrows! What is left though, shall be in the few, but they will
join My Son in rising up in glorious triumph to rebuild the Kingdom
of Heaven upon earth. (vol I page 216)
JULY 25, 1974 - The majesty of God will be much evident
at this time. Should this great Miracle be cast aside and rationalized
by atheistic, scientific man, I assure you, My children, the Chastisement
will come upon you with great force. (vol I page 231)
AUGUST 14, 1974 - You ask, My child, again, about the Ball
of Redemption. Yes, the Ball is out there, My child, in your atmosphere.
There will be a great Warning, there will be a phenomenon of great
magnitude and there will be a great Chastisement. All must come
about. However, mankind holds the balance for the coming events.
(vol I page 243)
JULY 12, 1976 - A great Miracle shall take place. Scientists
will seek to rationalize this Miracle. (vol I page 500)
MIRACLES
APRIL 10, 1971 - On April 10th at 6 p.m. the miracle of
the sun was viewed by all on the shrine grounds. Glory to God
and His Advocate, Our Adorable Mother Mary! (vol I page 26)
MAY 19, 1971 - It is there for all of you, if you would
take the time to read it. All must come to pass! And then the
Ball of Redemption will be upon you. At these latter days We are
manifesting to many, My child, many will receive graces far beyond
most human minds to understand. Oh, My children, there is nothing
We would pass by, in order to save you! But We would caution you
in days ahead to be very prudent in your approach to miracles,
for in the battle of the spirits, he (satan in anti-Christ) will
send out his disciples too, but his fruits will be known to you
in time, you will discern the blackness of the heart. (vol I page
28)
SEPTEMBER 7, 1971 - Yes, many miracles and manifestations
are being given in these latter days only because you ask for
physical proof! The faith is weak. Oh, will there be any faith
left when My Son returns!! (vol I page 35)
APRIL 1, 1972 - Many turn their backs and refuse to recognize
Our handiwork, rejecting even the power of the Holy Spirit, Who
is working among you. Do not, My children, credit satan with the
works of the Holy Spirit. The works from God are His miracles,
for He is far greater than any entity of your world or the world
beyond! He is God, He was God, He will be God always! (vol I page
49)
MARCH 18, 1973 - We are permitting at this time manifestations
and evidence of miracles more abundant than ever in the past history
of your world. This is a means We shall use to fight the armies
of satan. (vol I page 86)
MAY 30, 1973 - Make it known, My child, that the false
miracles of the end time are now at hand. Satan seeks to confuse
you. Make it known, My child, that there is no life beyond your
earth as you know it. Man will go out into space, better that
he use these efforts to find his way back to God. (vol I page
103)
However, you will be given many manifestations, and then My Son
will perform from these sacred grounds a major miracle that will
bring all to the knowledge and reality that there exists a God
Who is the Creator and rules Heaven and Earth. (vol I page 104)
DECEMBER 24, 1973 - In this final battle, there are many
agents of hell loosed upon earth. They are traveling in transports.
Do not be won over to a false theory of life beyond the heavens,
other than the Kingdom of God. Know that it is satan who sends
these vehicles before you. They are to confuse and confound you.
These objects that take flight across your earth are from hell.
They are only the false miracles of your times. Recognize them,
My children, they are not a figment of man's imagination. They
are present in your atmosphere, and they will become more dominant
as the fight goes on for the souls. (vol I page 151)
APRIL 13, 1974 - Yes, My child, there have been many miracles
of cure given by the Father, in due time, they will be recognized.
The one you speak of, My child, you will remain silent, for she
will come forward of her own accord. As a messenger for the Father,
We expect you, My child, to deliver the Message of Heaven and
the rest shall be done through the intercession of the Father
upon persons, places and things. (vol I page 188)
Yes, many will receive the manifestation of seeing with their
human eyes these demoniac creatures of hell. It is for the edification
of mankind. There will be great mysteries, there will be set great
miracles upon earth. (vol I page 191)
JULY 25, 1974 - The false miracles of the end days promoted
by satan are much in evidence upon your world. Science gives
many explanations but they have not come forward with the truth.
Your flying saucers are but a supernatural manifestation from
satan!..........It would be better, My child, if the clergy would
spend their time in not disproving the honorable miracles from
God the Father, and seek out the truth of these dishonorable,
dishonest miracles; that they call miracles, of satan! The miracles
from hell are transports, transports of demons! (vol I page 236)
DECEMBER 31, 1974 - You will circulate fast, My child,
the photographs of the vehicles of hell; the flying saucers. They
are gathering in great multitudes upon your earth. Know now that
they are of an illusion; a delusion, to mankind. It is but one
of the false miracles of satan. (vol I page 319)
FEBRUARY 1, 1975 - I cannot, in truth, promise you peace
at this time, for there will be no peace. It is a point now of
almost, My child, no return. The miracle you seek now must be
a complete reversal in the way of mankind. It is the only factor
that will hold back the Ball of Redemption upon you. (vol I page
331)
APRIL 5, 1975 - You ask for a miracle, My child? My Son
performed many miracles in His lifetime upon earth. Many turned
from Him, many denied Him in the face of these miracles. (vol
I page 355)
No, My child, a miracle shall not be given to this generation
at this time. You understand the Father has a plan. The message
given to you in secret must not be revealed at this time. (vol
I page 357)
AUGUST 5, 1975 - Satan will send many false miracles into
the world but they are of short duration and by his fruits will
he be known. (vol I page 393)
SEPTEMBER 27, 1975 - I bless you, My children, as My Mother
blesses you with the light of eternity. Know that in the days
ahead you will be given the grace of seeing miracles appear before
your very eyes. They will not go unrecognized for you will test
the spirits. All that is rotten will fall, and by the fruits will
they be known. (vol I page 418)
OCTOBER 2, 1975 - Satan has started a great war against
Us, My children. Satan will also bring forward false miracles.
However, you will not be deceived by them because he may propagate
his error but for a short while. If you will investigate each
miracle, the hand of satan will make itself known. The bleeding
statues, My children, must be investigated. (vol I page 421)
APRIL 17, 1976 - There will be many manifestations in your
world today, but watch, My child and My children, do not be misled.
Satan also has worldly miracles and many supernatural miracles
to perform. However, they will be of only short duration. All
evil is never triumphant, the Eternal Father will turn all evil
to good. (vol I page 483)
MAY 14, 1977 - Many miracles and phenomenon shall come
among you. You will be guided by them, but seek well that they
come not from satan. You must give it a test, a test of the spirits.
(vol II page 41)
JUNE 18, 1977 - My children, it is a war of the spirits
now such as never has been seen upon the earth before. Many prodigies,
many miracles shall take place, but test the spirits, My children;
satan has great knowledge, also. (vol II page 62)
AUGUST 13, 1977 - 666 himself now is loosed from hell,
satan. He has great powers and will entice your children in the
covens. He has great powers because he will teach them miracles,
show them miracles, that will convince them that he is satan.
In this manner he will promise them eternal life, until he has
their souls, and damned forever they will be. Too late to their
knowledge will they know they have sold their souls to satan!
(vol II page 76)
I give you, My children, graces; graces for cures, graces for
conversions; cures of the spirit, and cures of the body. Many
miracles and prodigies shall now be found upon earth; but beware
of those that satan creates. Test the spirits. Satan cannot hide
long his plan, My children and My child, so do not fear him.....(vol
II page 77)
NOVEMBER 21, 1977 - I assure you, My children, "Sam"
and his agents will perform what the world will call miracles,
but they are false miracles satan, Lucifer, has retained great
power when cast from Heaven. He has one mission upon earth now
and has been in the past, to take from God, the Eternal Father,
the Almighty and the Trinity, to take them the souls that the
Eternal Father has sent upon the earth to do battle with satan
and his agents from hell. (vol II page 105)
MARCH 25, 1978 - Satan is creating many false miracles,
and one of these are the supernatural manifestations that you
call the UFO's. My children, they are truly transports from hell.
However, hell shall not be found on another planet. (vol II page
137)
MAY 27, 1978 - Your world, My children, is now filled with
demons. They will promote accidents that are not accidents, destruction,
and even false miracles in the air. And I repeat to you, My children,
your UFO's are not unknown to your God, for they come from satan.
They are one of the false miracles of the latter days. They are
vehicles from hell, transporting demons, though these demons of
the spirit can act upon their own. I cannot, My child, give you
full details at this time one the reason for calling them transports
from hell. In time this will all be given in knowledge to you.
(vol II page 153)
JUNE 18, 1978 - Already satan is working his way into you
consciousness, seeking to take over your minds. He is now promoting
false miracles. Those you call flying saucers are images from
hell. My children, if you reject the knowledge of the supernatural,
you are now playing right into his hands. While he remains hidden
among you, he can go about and, like a ravenous wolf, gobble up
My children as they fall from grace. (vol II page 166)
JULY 15, 1978 - The Eternal Father is raising up among
you many prophets, but you must exercise care in discernment of
their spirits, for there will be also many false prophets sent
by satan. These false prophets will perform what appear to be
miracles, but they are false miracles of the end days, My children.
Test the spirits. False miracles will soon be acknowledged by
their fruits. (vol II page 172)
JULY 25, 1978 - Many prodigies, many miracles shall be
performed upon earth, but watch well, My children, and pray upon
them, for there are now many false prophets loosed upon earth.
There will be many manifestations in the air and on land, but
many of these shall come from the prince of darkness in the power
he now retains. Test the spirits well and pray. (vol II page 174)
AUGUST 14, 1979 - As you have been warned through prophets
of the past, who placed on parchment the words and counsel from
Heaven, you are living in the last days. There are forces now
loosed upon earth far greater than have ever been seen in the
history of mankind. They will bewilder the minds of scientists.
False miracles shall abound upon earth. Satan and the armies of
hell, all hell now is loosed to do battle with the children of
God. (vol II page 242)
OCTOBER 6, 1980 - My final word, My children, is to warn
all mankind at this time, that they must guard their families
well, the children, with sacramentals. For there are mysterious
forces now and false miracles that will abound upon earth, even
to deceive the elect. Therefore, to protect your children, they
must use all the armor available from Heaven. We do not wish to
see and watch future broken hearts of parents as they bury their
dead children. (vol II page 279)
NOVEMBER 1, 1985 (MSG) - You will pray constantly, My children.
The prayers can reach Heaven in short time, and perhaps can stop
the next tribulation. This is called a tribulation what will come
upon you next. It will be of an earth force again. However, with
your prayers, and your guarding of your homes, as We have always
told you to, with the crucifixes, you can escape with little damage,
or none at all. It will be as though the angel of death has passed
by your home. To some it will seem like a miracle, but to others
it's just an accepted part of life. For they will repeat: We are
doing as the Eternal Father has told us, and we are following
the directions of Our Blessed Mother, as She stood before us so
many times, and said, 'I am Mary, Help of Mothers. I love all
My children, and as such I will stand beside them, not wishing
that one shall fall into hell.
JUNE 18, 1993 (MSG) - There have been many miracles set
forth upon the earth by My Mother. This We have allowed as a grace
to mankind, but many have been forgotten and rejected. My Mother
has at this time gone throughout all corners of the world seeking
salvation for mankind. How many have listened to Her counsel?
MISSILES - See Armaments and War, Nuclear
MODERNISM/HUMANISM
V O L
U M E I
AUGUST 5, 1971 - Do not, My children, be deceived by the
words of the evil ones about you, who cry to you of no space left
for man, there is space for everyone. My Father has a plan for
every life He sends. There is, My children, a fear campaign to
cause confusion among you. None of these fears are based on the
fear of their God. No!!! These fears are only built on the socializing
of man and his humanism being exploited to cover every sin that
even the mind of satan could not conceive such diabolical folly.
We do not want to see your country destroyed. We do not wish the
earth destroyed but rather than see souls fall in the abyss. But
those who remain with My Son have nothing to fear. (vol I page
32)
AUGUST 15, 1971 - Your workers will be limited, My child.
It is necessary for your safety and the well being of your mission
with Us. Your greatest adversaries will be those who should know
better, Our Cardinals who lead Our bishops into error. You have
been allowed to proceed in error because of your vain satisfaction
seeking of bodily pleasures and because you have replaced your
God with idols, humanism, idolism, destruction. (vol I page 33)
AUGUST 21, 1971 - You have taxed the patience of your God,
with your pride, your intellectual pride, your vanity, your materialism,
your humanism, excluding in truth your God from your life! (vol
I page 34)
OCTOBER 2, 1971 - Call on Michael more often. He will enter
My House without even being acknowledged within My House! Anti-Christ
covers the earth now. Those who choose him surround their lives
with materialism's and this new creation of humanism will find
they have only been prey of satan, and when they have rejected
the light that We have given them they will have willfully cast
Us aside! They have done so willfully! (vol I page 37)
NOVEMBER 1, 1971 - We look upon the most despicable of
sins being committed in the disguise and name of humanism, modernism,
all true satanism! You build your ladder to hell! Yes, We promise
you the ultimate victory, for I shall carry the Light to the world
despite the plan of satan. (vol I page 38)
NOVEMBER 20, 1971 - They will enter hell as numerous as
the snowflakes that fall from the heavens. Impress on all, the
existence of hell, My child, this they would deny. There are fires
of hell; those fires will engulf those who have lost their chastity
and modesty; led by modernism to expose their bodies, the Temples
of the Spirit, to ridicule and sin, the flames will burn every
inch that has been exposed. (vol I page 39)
DECEMBER 31, 1971 - Feed the soul, so many souls are thirsting;
so many souls are starving, for the Light. Bring them the Light.
They must not allow this to be clouded by modernism and humanism
which is all satanism. (vol I page 42)
FEBRUARY 1, 1972 - Always beside you is the evil one, the
dark man of sin, pray much that you will not fall into permissive
interpretations of law and conduct. Humanism, Modernism, Paganism.
Many are selling their souls to get to the head and consorting
with devils! Woe to evil man! Recognize, recognize the plan of
satan to seduce you. (vol I page 44)
AUGUST 5, 1972 - St. Peter: Hear me well! Those in the
House of God, you will stop your conversing, your leanings toward
modernism, your venturing with rationalization! Turn back and
get on your knees! You have been deceived by satan. He has been
present at your meetings. Many receive the fate of hell! Your
rank in the House of God gives you no precedence over another
soul!, for you, too, will be cast aside and judged with the least
for your part in the final damnation of those souls entrusted
in your care by the Father! (vol I page 59)
OCTOBER 2, 1972 - Many in the house of God have been misled
to accept teachings of an untruth. Falsity has been covered by
rationalization and learning's of modernism and humanism! You
will find, My child, this well-laid plan has corrupted many! (vol
I page 67)
FEBRUARY 1, 1973 - Our hearts are torn by the many who
choose of free will to cast aside the graces given by the Father.
Many have accepted the false maxims of humanism, modernism and
pure satanism. Delusion! Delusion allowed by the Father for the
separation of the sheep from the goats. Weep not, My child, for
those who fall into hell, for they will have had every opportunity
with their eyes open to stay on the path to the Kingdom. (vol
I page 79)
FEBRUARY 10, 1973 - There is much error and delusion upon
earth. Many have fallen into the ways of the world, leading to
a society based on humanism, modernism and pure satanism. Before
the battle is completed, you will have chosen your road and the
ultimate eternity for your soul. (vol I page 82)
MARCH 18, 1973 - My Son placed upon earth representatives.
They will counsel in truth or answer to the Father for their fallacies,
for their abominations, for their half-truths, and for their falling
into the false modes of modernism and humanism which We find prevalent
among many. When a man has given himself and chosen from
out of the world as a priest of his God, he will be
a priest for life. (vol I page 85)
MARCH 25, 1973 - Many of Our dedicated have fallen in line
with the false maxims of modernism. Our hearts are truly saddened
at the blindness that has entered into the hearts of many in
the House of God. (vol I page 90)
St. Robert Bellarmine: Why do we find these abominations in the
House of God What is the new modernism you claim so constructive
in the House of God, while we see destruction about us and the
loss of souls to the King of Heaven? Arrogant man! What are you
calling down upon yourself bit your own destruction? Lovers of
pleasure! Fornicators without conscience! Even among the men of
God! what punishment do you call down upon yourselves! You who
should stand forth as an example to your flock have led them from
the road!! (vol I page 91)
MAY 10, 1973 - Man has adopted a way of life in which he
no longer recognizes sin as sin, or offenses against the nature
and existence of his God. Many upon your earth have fallen into
the web of satan, and accepted the false maxims of modernism and
humanism. Many have rationalized their sins until they are blinded.
Many who are teaching are teaching in error. It is only for the
Father to judge whether this he of heart or of true purpose. Therefore,
those who lead souls into the path of sin and eventual damnation
will be held accountable before the Father. (vol I page 101)
MAY 30, 1973 - You must retire from this world that has
been given to satan. Recognize the evils that are created for
your downfall; humanism, modernism. They are satanic creations
of satan to place you and blind you to the truth, place you on
the road to damnation. For the man of perdition now is loose upon
your world. He roams your world, and he is gathering many agents.
(vol I page 104)
JULY 15, 1973 - The shepherds, Our representatives in your
world, will lead their sheep with firm discipline and faith; faith
in the light. They will remove all destructive minims of modernism
and humanism from their teachings. Suffering is purification.
The world is filled with soul-destroyers. Discard, cast off these
evil trappings and clothe yourself in sackcloth. Go forth through
the world as pilgrims so that you may return eventually to the
Kingdom from whence you came. (vol I page 116)
JULY 25, 1973 - St. Joachim: Humanism in your world has
been created by satan. You will bring back the adages of old of
'Spare the rod, and you will spoil the child.' Discipline must
be returned to the homes. (vol I page 118)
SEPTEMBER 7, 1973 - The example among your teachers leaves
much to be corrected. Those who have been given authority of teaching
must not surrender the truth in the light and substitute it for
the false maxims of humanism and the advancement of what you call
scientific intervention among man. For with all your knowledge,
with all your learning, you have not learned the basic foundation
of faith. (vol I page 128)
OCTOBER 2, 1973 - Pope Pious X: I left behind with you
many writings, warning of what was to come about when I left your
earth. Why have you cast them aside? They were inspired from
the Father. You are traveling now onto the road of modernism,
and rationalizing your offenses against the Father. (vol I page
136)
MARCH 18, 1974 - My child, I must clarify what I have told
you in the past, for there is great discord in talk of this nature.
When I requested that you flee from false pastors. I did not imply
that you were to run from the House of My Son. No, We meant, My
child, that you were not to rely, or to absorb the misconceptions,
you are not to absorb those who have entered into the web of satan
to propagate modernism and humanism which is satanism, among the
young. (vol I page 171)
St. Pious X: Yes, my child, I do not have many opportunities to
speak to the people of earth, but in this time of great anxiety
and great darkness upon earth. I wish to make it known to those
who represent the Father and the Church of the Son that they must
restore discipline. They must not surrender to the modes of the
world; this being the errors of modernism, humanism. ............
Strength in the Holy See! Man wearing the robes of a cleric must
be excommunicated so that he may not contaminate the world with
errors of modernism. You shall not remain with a soul when there
are millions and thousands of souls to be saved. (vol I page 174)
APRIL 13, 1974 - There is a plan to deceive the nations.
A delusion is allowed by the Father. This is the delusion that
you accept upon earth that casts the darkness into the souls of
mankind. This delusion I can give you, My child, in a few words.
It is a delusion of old, evolved from humanism, brotherhood, modernism,
all covered by the evil of satan. Deception upon deception! O
heresy, mournful heresy, whatever shall become of you? Why have
you cast aside the truth? (vol I page 192)
JUNE 15, 1974 - Pray much, My children, for your pastors,
that they be given the strength from the Father to go forward
in truth and in the light. It is sad to say, My child, that many
have lost their way, preferring to receive the rewards of mankind.
Their knowledge of the supernatural has been cast aside and replaced
by humanism and the modernism of your times, rationalizing even
sin, My child! (vol I page 213)
AUGUST 14, 1974 - There will be no rationalization for
sin! There will be no acceptance of modernization of My word or
My teachings! There is no reason, no absolute reason, to find
new ways and create new methods to you. Therefore, listen and
learn a simple lesson. You are being warned that your present
actions are displeasing the Father and you will receive a Chastisement
in accordance and with measure of this displeasure. (vol I page
244)
SEPTEMBER 7, 1974 - Pope Pious X: I recognized, My child,
the evils that were to fall upon the world. Search for the knowledge
I have left to you. I, too, was enlightened by the Holy Spirit.
Read well the legacy of truth that I left to you. Modernism must
be erased from your world! (vol I page 258)
NOVEMBER 1, 1974 - You have given yourselves to satan,
the pleasures of the flesh. You have cast aside the basic truths
that will keep you on the narrow road to the Kingdom. You have
replaced them with a delusion sent by satan. This, My child, I
will explain with only three words; humanism, modernism, and satanism.
(vol I page 286)
NOVEMBER 20, 1974 - On your pilgrimage in your world, you
must lead a life of austerity, based on sacrifice and discipline.
Return to prayer, dedicate yourselves with true vocation. Do not
follow the modes of your world based on the themes of modernism
and setting of man up as an idol to worship by humanism, and eventually
subjugating your will to follow the plan of satan. Prayer, redemption
through sacrifice! There is no other course that leads to Heaven.
The road is filled with thorns. The road is narrow, but the reward
is great. Deny yourself of your worldly pleasures. Sacrifice and
retire into a life of prayer. You will not gather the sheep with
socializing. You must return to a life of inner contemplation
and prayer. Get down on your knees and return to a pure spirit
of child-like quality. (vol I page 296)
DECEMBER 6, 1974 - The materialism and modernism that man
claims as his way of life now is setting him on a fast path to
destruction. Make it known, My child, to the world that your life,
all life, upon earth, is but a short duration. All must pass over
the veil and be judged. Satan has set darkness, darkness of the
soul, among you. His deception has claimed many. Many of Our mitres
have fallen to this deception. Yes, My child, there are not enough
prayers nor sacrifices for your priests. (vol I page 302)
You must in the time given to you make a complete reversal of
your ways that offend the Father much. You do this not for mankind
in his earthly life but for the salvation of souls. Awaken from
your slumber, leaders! You have fallen asleep. You have been lulled
into darkness because you have given yourselves to the pleasures
of the flesh! As leaders of Our sheep, My clergy, do not be misled
by your modernist and your humanist! You are being led into the
darkness!! A deep darkness covers your world! You will know the
hand of the Father upon you! (vol I page 348)
DECEMBER 24, 1974 - The materialism and modernism that
man claims as his way of life is setting him on a fast path to
destruction. Make it known, My child, to the world that your life,
all life, upon earth, is but a short duration. All must pass
over the veil and be judged. Satan has set darkness, darkness
of the soul, among you. His deception has claimed many. Many of
the Mitres have fallen to this deception. Yes, My child, there
are not enough prayers nor sacrifices for your priests. (vol I
page 307,308)
MAY 17, 1975 - St. Theresa: Yes, Our Lady wills that I
remain with you for a while, for there is much work to do to outwit
satan in his plan to capture the children of the Eternal Father,
our brothers and sisters. We must work now, work fast, my sister,
to remove the errors in teachings; the false doctrines of modernism
and humanism set upon the hearts and minds of mankind. (vol I
page 364)
MAY 28, 1975 - All who have given themselves to the pleasures
of the flesh, all who have given themselves to the new modes of
humanism and modernism set down for ensnarement of the human race
by satan; all those who close their ears to Our Voices, shall
burn!!!(vol I page 370)
JUNE 5, 1975 - We find the leadership of Our Church, many
who have fallen into darkness of spirit! Many who have given themselves
to the modes of the world involved in the destructive following
of humanism and modernism! (vol I page 375)
JUNE 18, 1975 - The ways of modernism and humanism are
the ways of satan! You have been warned in the past and you are
being warned now! You are leading your lives in error! A great
delusion has been set upon mankind to test Our sheep! All that
is rotten will fall to satan! (vol I page 379)
AUGUST 5, 1975 - Satan has poisoned many minds and many
are following like sheep to the slaughter. The evils of modernism
and humanism abound throughout your world. I repeat Myself, My
child, much for in My repetition I hope to reach many. (vol I
page 391)
Many prayers are needed for your clergy. The leaders of many have
gone into deep darkness, through false ideology, maxims of modernism
and humanism mankind has entered into a delusion. All who have
followed satan will fall fast into darkness of spirit no longer
recognizing the light. When I return shall there be even a small
light of Faith left upon your earth? The numbers saved will be
counted in the few. (vol I page 395)
NOVEMBER 20, 1975 - The conquest of souls is promoted by
those who have given themselves to humanism and modernism. They
have entered My Houses to desecrate the spirit! They have cast
your Guardian, Michael, from My House! And what have they gained!
They have opened the doors for the entrance of all manner of demons.
Demons now prancing in human form! All manner of desecration!
(vol I page 441,442)
NOVEMBER 22, 1975 - You must warn your clergy, My child,
that all of the modernism and humanism that pervade now their
lives have been created by satan. It is part of the plan, the
diabolical plan of satan, to destroy My Son's Church upon your
earth. (vol I page 446)
DECEMBER 27, 1975 - There are many now in Rome, My children,
who seek to set up a one world religion. It is based on humanism
and modernism. It is not the religion of tradition given by My
Son Jesus to mankind. Man is building a Church of man. It is not
one of the cross. (vol I page 460)
DECEMBER 27, 1975 - In the Eternal City of Rome, the light
is dim. There is a conspiracy of evil. Holiness must return to
the man who represents himself in My Name. In the Eternal City
of Rome, My Pastors, you have opened your doors to all manner
of heretics and separated brethren who shall not join you for
the betterment of My Church, but to destroy and confuse and bring
together a new religion of man, one based on humanism and modernism
and satanism! (vol I page 461)
DECEMBER 31, 1975 - You shall not gather your flock, My
pastors, by compromising your Faith. You shall not gather the
flock for the Eternal Father in Heaven by giving yourself to the
world, by adopting humanism and modernism as your guide. (vol
I page 463)
MARCH 18, 1976 - We ask that all remain steadfast in their
missions. We ask that all do not leave now, but remain and await
the Warning that will soon be given to mankind. We do not wish
a separation or a division among Our sheep. You shall not compromise
your Faith. You shall not be misled into error in the name of
humanism and modernization. (vol I page 478)
APRIL 10, 1976 - I must, as your Mother, give you warning,
O you who wear the Red Hats and the Purple Hats in My Son's Church,
that you have allowed yourselves to be counted with the goats.
For the love of power and being misled by humanism and modernism
within your lifetime and your rule. O you who have become of little
faith, wherever shall your road lead you but to damnation! But
sorrow upon sorrow, the road you travel is taking many of those
entrusted in your care, you are taking them with you to destruction.
(vol I page 479)
MAY 15, 1976 - Man shall not judge My Church on the actions
of man, for man now is taking it and building a church for man,
not to honor his God, the Eternal Father, not to honor and prepare
his soul for the entrance over the veil! No! He is now wasting
valuable time in promoting a mode of humanism and modernism. You
are feeding the nature, the carnal nature of mankind, while you
are starving their spirit. (vol I page 488)
MAY 26, 1976 - O pastors, whatever shall become of you?
You have scattered the flocks. Your recovery can be a simple measure.
You may balance the scale by turning back and accepting the simple
way of life and the truth as has been given to you. You must not
innovate and use all manner of modernism, which has been created
by satan. Many who wear the Red Hat are misleading the Purple
Hats. (vol I page 490)
MAY 29, 1976 - My children, keep in your homes the knowledge
of truth, your books, your manuals that were given to you in the
light. Do not succumb to the errors of your times, your times
of humanism and modernism, for it is all obscured from your view,
the truth, for this modernism and humanism, the trend has been
promoted by satan. (vol I page 496)
JUNE 12, 1976 - In the Eternal City of Rome now, red forces
gather. And why? Because they do not pray enough. They are, My
children, busy running in all directions, setting up new government,
new procedures, all manner of implementation and novelty, trying
to rise high above the Eternal Father, placing man on a pedestal
to worship. Long were you warned to beware of modernization in
My Son's House. Humanism is satanism! You do not bring a soul
back by laxity and feeding his carnal nature. Discipline is needed,
but first and above all, this discipline must start with the leaders.
(vol I page 501)
JUNE 18, 1976 - In your search for peace and brotherhood,
you are building another religion, My children. It is a false
religion of humanism and modernism. How many warnings were given
to you in the past, warnings against these forces, the forces
sent out from hell! You pastors, who have rejected Michael as
the guardian of the Faith and My Son you cannot say the Mass is
invalid. This has brought great sorrow to Our hearts, for many
left the fold on this matter. (vol II page 505)
JUNE 24, 1976 - I give fair warning to all that your pursuit
of humanism and modernism shall send many from My Church upon
your earth. My Son has had His heart torn anew by the many who
have cast aside His teachings, who seek to destroy the foundation
of His Church, My Son. There are many Judas's in His House! It
truly rains teardrops from Heaven. (vol I page 507)
SEPTEMBER 7, 1976 - O My children, your world is going
into deeper darkness of spirit. Recognize the signs of your times.
Do not be caught asleep, Our pastors. Awaken from your sleep,
before it is too late. The foulest of crimes against your God
are being committed. And these crimes are being committed in the
name of humanism and modernism and satanism. Many of the learned
men of science have turned their searching for knowledge to channels
of corruption and satanism. (vol I page 529)
Man has progressed fast onto a road that is taking him farther
away from the truth and farther into the darkness of spirit. He
is creating, in his searching, a new church, a new world, a world
that is shutting out the light. The knowledge of his God is being
taken from among him and being substituted by all manner of humanistic
modes with modernizing, improvising, experimentation. And what
is behind all this, but a quest for change. And why does man change,
My children? Dissatisfaction, guidance by satan, the spirit of
darkness entering into the hearts of mankind. (vol I page 531)
SEPTEMBER 28, 1976 - All manners of abomination are being
committed in My House under the guise of false humanism and modernism.
Were you not warned in the past about the errors that can be set
loose by these methods? You reject them because of science. You
rationalize sin until sin has become a way of life upon your earth.
And what does it gain you as you run about, going to and from
gathering your coins, filling your coffers, building great palaces.
And for what? To be destroyed because of sin, lacking a true purpose.
And what form of religion and worship are your building? A utopia
of man? No! I say unto you: You are fast plunging to your own
destruction. (vol I page 539)
OCTOBER 2, 1976 - You must all, pastors in My Son's House,
pray more. You do not pray enough. You do not meditate! And what
have you done to the good books given to you to help you in your
prayer life? You have cast them aside and run about like chickens
without heads. And looking for what? To gather the sheep by humanism
and modernism. And I say "chickens without heads, for you
flap your wings in pride; you stomp about in your arrogance, and
you have no heads, for you have lost them to satan!" (vol
I page 544)
Do not cast aside Tradition for modernism and humanism, for these
are the creation of satan! You cannot separate Faith and Tradition,
for one stands together with the other to unify My Church. It
is the foundation of My House. I gave you the direction that has
withstood the test of time, and you, in your arrogance and fallen
nature of mankind, have now taken it upon yourselves to change
My Church. (vol I page 546)
OCTOBER 6, 1976 - O My children, the word has been given
to you. It is a simple measure of truth that has been written
within your holy Book, the Bible. There is no reasoning that is
of God to change the wording and the object of the passages as
laid down exactly by your Apostles, the founding fathers of My
Son's Church. O My children, open your hearts to the truth. You
are being deceived by satan when you make these changes in the
name of modernism and humanism. (vol I page 548)
NOVEMBER 1, 1976 - The good pastors of My Son's House have
always warned of the danger of modernization and modernism for
modernism shall always lead to heresy. Modernism shall cause the
Faith to darken and be lost in the hearts of many. And modernism
shall lead to atheism, My children. Awaken from your slumber and
recognize the signs of the times. The red forces are gathering
throughout your world. Communism shall be the scourge of mankind.
(vol I page 552)
NOVEMBER 20, 1976 - Give charity of heart in action to
your brothers and sisters, but do not be deluded, My children,
into comparing and bringing a comparison of charity and humanism
together. When the world and My House, My Church, become as one,
you will know that the end is at hand, My children. Recognize
the signs of your times and act upon them. (vol I page 559)
DECEMBER 24, 1976 - Experimentation and all manners of
abomination being committed in the name of humanism and modernism,
for what but destruction! You travel about like the chickens without
heads, flapping your wings in pride and arrogance, for your heads
have been taken off. And those with heads, they extend into the
clouds, dark clouds above them, blinded by their arrogance, blinded
by their pride! Get down to your knees and take off this pride
and arrogance that has made you blind to the truth! (vol I page
571)
V O L
U M E I I
FEBRUARY 1, 1977 - There are many novelties, there are
many abominations and offenses being committed in My Son's Houses
throughout the world. Man has given himself to experimentation
of humanism, and man has not learned from his past or listened
to his past Vicars, the Popes of old, who warned of the approach
of heresy and modernism. You were given the measures to be guided
by to prevent the entrance of the antichrist into your world and
into My Son's Church. But man of God, followers of the cross,
you cast the cross down and you stomp upon it! (vol I page 19)
MARCH 18, 1977 - My child, My children, this new church
they are building but no angels help to build, only demons; they
are building a church of man, using as a foundation the basic
carnal nature of mankind. There is nothing beautiful of spirit;
it is all humanistic, My child, modernistic. And what are they
doing but they are building the church of man with satan as the
director! (vol I page 27,28)
APRIL 2, 1977 - My children, I do not speak in riddles
to you, no more than My Son's prophets spoke to you in riddles.
There is much given by Heaven that remains a mystery to man because
he does not accept the graces from Heaven, graces that will open
his eyes, open his heart for the entrance of the light. Man in
his search for worldly acclaim bringing with him humanism and
modernism and doctrines of devils into My Son's House and the
world's peoples; man in his search for the truth using science
and scientific minds have found themselves farther from the truth
and the light, for man is ever searching but never coming to the
truth. (vol II page 31)
APRIL 9, 1977 - My children, what manner of abomination
is being committed in My Son's House? Can you not cry with Him,
suffer with Him on His way to the cross? No! Demons have entered
into My Son's House. They claim the human body to use them to
defile My Son's House until evil men of the cross are setting
a church up, now, a church of man with no angels guiding them,
with no supernatural intervention from Heaven guiding them. This
church of man shall be built on naturalism, modernism, and humanism............Oh,
My children, there are doctrines of demons being given throughout
your world now. The teachings of the prophets of old are being
cast aside as being too old for a modern world. (vol II page 35)
MAY 18, 1977 - Parents, you must protect your children
from all who have progressed into a new form of humanism and modernism.
They have de-Christianized your children. (vol II page 43)
JULY 15, 1977 - There are many children without the light
now, and the measure of responsibility is with My shepherds. You
must understand that the supreme and first commandment of all
and to all mankind is honor to his God, and the Eternal Father
is your God in the Trinity. If you reject Him, if you build a
new house, a new church upon earth, it will not have the angels
at your side, you will have demons of humanism and modernism to
your own destruction. (vol II page 65)
JULY 25, 1977 - My children, I must give you all fair warning
now that if you conform with all of the new mods, and all of the
modes of the world, in the name of humanism and modernism, leading
to satanism, I say unto you; that you will conform and die on
the vine! My Son is the vinedresser, the Eternal Father is the
vine, and your were all placed as branches on this vine to grow
and flower, and bring forth good fruit, but you have chosen to
poison the waters, and you are bringing forth bad fruit! Because
of this the Eternal Father will seek to shake the vine, and all
that is rotten will fall! (vol II page 67)
My children, My Son has given you the way. He is the way. The
rules were simple. Pastors in My Son's churches, you do not read
your Book of life, the Bible. You are too busy committing yourselves
to pleasure; you are too busy indulging your mortal appetites;
you are too busy being deluded by satan with all rules of modernism
and humanism and secularism, all of the 'isms', My children hat
are leading you to communism. ............In your world now of
modernism and humanism, socialism, communism, secularism, all
of this, My children, is leading to the unification of man into
a one world religion, a one world church, and a one world government
to the enslavement of mankind, creating a form of mass atheism
in the world. Man is setting up false idols to worship; money,
power, materialism. My children, none of this will have any value
to you when you leave this world. (vol I page 68)
Pious X: Keep the Faith. Modernism must be cast out. Heretics
must be set loose, but they cannot be retained. My children, you
must listen while there is time. Restore the House of your God.
Do not defile and commit abominations in the House of your God
much longer, for you have been tested, and all that is rotten
shall be cast out. (vol II page 70)
NOVEMBER 1, 1977 - My child, modernism promoted heresy,
heresy promotes satan. It is because of the sins of man that this
time has come upon your world. You are all now living in the latter
days, My children. Many shall carry a heavy cross in the days
ahead. The good shall be persecuted. Lovers of evil shall glorify
those who dwell in evil. (vol II page 97)
NOVEMBER 19, 1977 - My children, the way? I am the way.
The way, the plan was given to you. It is a simple plan of childlike
submission to truth, doctrine and tradition. Man seeks to build
a new way for himself based on humanism and modernism and all
of the other defilement's, division, and destruction of souls
that shall accompany these efforts. (vol II page 103)
DECEMBER 7, 1977 - In the name of humanism and modernism
the Mystical Body of My Son, Jesus, is now in great crisis. Only
you as a generation shall determine the outcome of this battle.
Pray a constant vigilance of prayer in your homes, private prayer,
public prayer. The demons must run at the sound of prayer. (vol
II page 109)
You must not compromise your Faith, for you were given a firm
foundation. Humanism and modernism will lead to nothing but destruction
and satanism. (vol II page 110)
DECEMBER 31, 1977 - The vocations are nil, and why? Because
the example is rotten! Tradition has been cast aside for modernism
and humanism. (vol II page 113)
You have been warned in the past by the descendants of Peter to
guard My Church from humanism, modernism and satanism. When the
world and My Church become as one, know that the end is at hand.
Many of the descendants of Peter, men of knowledge and piety,
gave you the reasons for shunning modernism and liberal attitudes.
Many of those wearing the Red Hats have sold their souls to satan
to get to the head........There are now demons, doctrines of demons
now spread throughout My House, corrupters of souls. You call
the truth, the supernatural, the existence of My prophets as myths!
(vol II page 114)
FEBRUARY 1, 1978 - My heart has been torn as I watch mankind
wallowing in filth in the name of progress and modernism. He is
now, man, standing on the brink of his destruction. (vol II page
117)
My children, you will pray much for your pastors, your clergy.
The Red Hats have fallen and the Purple Hats are being misled.
Rome is in darkness. And I say unto you now, conform and you will
die on the vine! Conform to the new mode and you shall die on
the vine. (vol II page 119)
FEBRUARY 10, 1978 - The Warning will soon come upon you.
Shall you then awaken from your slumber, and turn from your present
road of destruction? Can you not understand the counsel from My
Mother? Can you not give yourselves over to lives of piety and
usefulness to man without falling into a delusion based on humanism
and modernism in the ways of man? (vol II page 123)
MARCH 18, 1978 - You have been given many warnings in the
past, and you are receiving a final warning to return My Church
to its former glory. Experimentation must stop. Humanism and modernism
is a creation of satan in My House! A delusion has been set upon
you. Your heads are out in the clouds, fogged. You are like ducks
floating fast downstream to the brink, the edge. You are playing
follow the leader. It is a game of destruction. Turn back now
while there is time! (vol II page 133)
MARCH 25, 1978 - Please, My children, pray for your priests.
Many are being led astray. Discipline and the rule must be followed
in the priesthood. This brings great sorrow to the Eternal Father
and My Son to see the manner in which the priesthood has cast
aside the rule in the name of modernism and humanism. (vol II
page 135)
MAY 3, 1978 - My children, this is now the time for action
with prayer. In normal, semi-normal times, when even the clergy
could be labeled as pious and holy, satan set about to attack
My Son's Church upon earth. But as time went on even the clergy
gave themselves to the world, seeking not the graces from Heaven,
neither calling upon the Holy Spirit to guide them, but giving
themselves over to worldly pursuits leading to humanism and modernism
in My Son's House. (vol II page 141)
You have in your midst a group united to promote peace and security.
You cry peace and security, and there is no peace or security,
for there shall not be peace or security unless you follow the
rules given by your God. Man shall not replace them, by a man-made
set of rules based on humanism and modernism. The way to Heaven
is a simple way, and in your sophistication you reject it. (vol
II page 143)
MAY 13, 1978 - My children, you must understand that man
in his human frailties often succumbed to the mores of modernism.
Countless times in the past the Spirit of Truth came with the
knowledge to man that the day would come when a great delusion
shall descend upon mankind and cover the earth in a blanket of
darkness. This day has arrived, My children. Recognize the forces
of evil about you now. The man of sin, 666, satan, Lucifer, with
all the demons loosed from hell, now are upon earth and do great
battle with the children of God. (vol II page 145)
MAY 20, 1978 - My children, understand that, with all of
your modernization and your intent for good, you have been deceived
by satan. Humanism and modernism is bringing about bad fruits,
My children. A great measure of responsibility shall be given
among those in My Hierarchy in My Church that have allowed these
errors to come in. (vol II page 150)
Pray, My children, for your priests, your bishops, your cardinals.
Too few pray for them, for in their awe and their knowledge they
believed in the past, My children, that these Hierarchy had a
special passport to Heaven. No, My children, they have a human
nature also, and human frailties, and must be protected by prayer,
and penance and sacrifice of others also, for them, in your charity
of heart. In your love of human nature that We hear man speaking
of as he falls into the errors of modernism and humanism; True
love lies in prayers and sacrifice for an individual, for when
you come over the veil, I assure you, it is only love and prayers
that can follow you. (vol II page 151)
My children, you must understand that many are called but few
are chosen. I cry from this knowledge, for it is My purpose to
come to you as your Mother to save all of Our children,. But this
has never come to a reality because, My children, many have allowed
their hearts to become hardened. Their ears are closed, and they
only open their ears to listen to all the heresy, to all of the
modernism and humanistic tendencies, even coming to them from
their teachers, even in My Son's Church, His House upon earth.
(vol II page 152)
MAY 30, 1978 - My Church, My House, upon earth, is undergoing
a great crisis; however, no evil shall ever be triumphant. It
is a time of testing for all mankind, and all who have developed
itching ears, adopting new doctrines and ways that are akin to
modernism shall find themselves fast plunging into error and deceit
and death. The wages of all sin is death. My children, pray for
your bishops and your cardinals. Be a good example to all. I ask
you to remain in your parish churches for reason. Accept the cross,
the suffering that you must persevere in. (vol II page 158)
JUNE 1, 1978 - And do not fall into the errors of your
modernists who say that there is no hell or purgatory and even
deny the existence of Heaven. For I assure you, My children, that
each and every one of you shall eventually learn the truth that
there is a Heaven, a hell and a purgatory. (vol II page 160)
All who accept the errors of modernism and humanism will find
it most difficult to maintain the truth and stay on the narrow
road. I gave you, in My visit upon earth, the rule and the way.
You must follow it or you will fall. Keep a constant vigilance
of prayer going throughout your country and all of the countries
upon earth. (vol II page 161)
I give fair warning to all bishops and cardinals to adjust and
mend the rents that they have allowed in My House, My Church upon
earth. Experimentation in the name of humanism and modernism must
stop now! Obedience must mean obedience to God the Father in Heaven.
Man has a secondary role to his God, and no man shall be called
"god" upon earth. (vol II page 162)
JUNE 18, 1978 - Doctrines and traditions are being cast
aside in the name of modernism and humanism! The present council
and the Hierarchy of Rome must remove their hardness from their
hearts and realize that the armies of hell, satan, Lucifer, is
loosed now upon earth as 666 now, his major attack shall upon
Rome and the Vatican. (vol II page 166)
JUNE 18, 1978 - My children, pastors in My House, awaken
from your slumber. As you have fallen asleep, the enemy has come
in through your doors unnoticed. You must cast aside now the errors
of humanism and modernism. Review over again the teachings from
your past popes and learn by them. They were given for reason!
All of your experimentation and change has produced naught. Your
fruits are rotten. Do you think, as you produce bad fruits, that
I will allow you, O Red Hats and Purple Hats, to remain upon the
earth? You shall be shaken from the tree of life. (vol II page
169)
JULY 15, 1978 - Do you not recognize, My children, pastors
in My Son's House, that satan is among you? He has come as an
angel of light, deluding you with promises of humanism and modernism
for mankind, promises of success and the salvation of souls for
whom? For Lucifer! (vol II page 170)
My children, I have also a great sadness of heart as I watch and
wait for My Hierarchy in My House, My Church, to awaken and come
out of the fog. It is sad that satan, who comes as an angel of
light among you, giving you all manner of humanistic theories
based on modernism and progression, that satan could blind you
to the truth and you will accept error even to the extent of promoting
the rise of the forces of antichrist in My Basilica in Rome. (vol
II page 172)
JULY 25, 1978 - This has come about only because arrogance
and pride has entered upon them. They no longer pray but have
succumbed to the errors of humanism and modernism. Holiness must
be returned to the vocation. And this can only be acquired by
restoring prayer in My Son's House and especially the prayer life
that is so lacking now in the clergy. (vol II page 173)
AUGUST 19, 1978 - You cannot separate Tradition from your
Faith, My children. The past leaders of My Son's Church, His House,
the popes, had given you counsel to strengthen this House. You
cannot cast this counsel aside for modernistic tendencies and
modes. A church in darkness wears a band of death about it! (vol
II page 184)
SEPTEMBER 13, 1978 - It is not without reason that all
of the past descendants of Peter guided you well against the false
precepts of modernism and humanism in My Son's Church and the
world. And now, My children, it is of a fact; by their fruits
of this humanistic and modernistic approach but discord, disunity
and a loss of souls to Heaven. (vol II page 189)
MAY 23, 1979 - I have told you in the past, and I repeat
over and over, that sin is insanity, and with this insanity, your
peoples of the world have formed a feeling, a major feeling, throughout
your world, that sin may be condoned and promoted under the name
of modernism, socialism, communism, atheism, which is all pure
satanism. (vol II page 213)
As We look and search the world for faithful and true pastors,
We find that each and every Cardinal and Bishop
has fallen into the modes of the world now, consisting of advancement
to modernism, socialism, communism, and even satanism. We find
there are those over the age of reason that have made a mockery
of My Name, of My Church, and in the name of satan, they go about
as angels of light with ravenous hearts, preaching doctrines of
devils. You cannot escape a just punishment for your deeds. .........I
am your God, and I say unto you; continue to change My Church,
bringing in all, even heretics, even homosexuals. All aberrations
condemned by the Eternal Father, you will permit in the name of
humanism. Nay, no! I say unto you as your God. You will be given
a short reign, for I consider you then an abomination, and as
such you will be removed. (vol II page 215)
JUNE 2, 1979 - You must not reject the Sacraments in My
Church; you must not reject the teachings for new modes of modernism
and socialism. (vol II page 222)
JUNE 9, 1979 - As in every walk of life there is the way.
And the way to mankind was given through the Book of life and
love, the Bible. And this way must be followed with discipline,
tempered by love and understanding, but most of all built with
tradition and faith. Many of My pastors now have fallen into the
modes, the present modes of modernism and humanism and are misleading
Our sheep. Therefore, it will be necessary for the Eternal Father
to set in motion the cleansing, the tribulation upon mankind.
In this manner shall there fast come about the separation of the
sheep from the goats. (vol II page 224)
JUNE 18, 1979 - There are many false prophets now going
throughout the world. They come to you as angels of light, but
they are distorting the Book of life, the Bible. They are reprinting
it to suit their own ideas, ideologies, and a new-found theology.
You must not accept these modernistic printings, for they do not
carry the truth nor the true word of God. (vol II page 226,227)
Many homes shall be torn asunder by the fall of the children.
Parents shall shed tears of anguish. Therefore, prevent this now
while your children are at a young age. Give them a firm foundation
of their faith. Be not afraid to speak out against heresy and
abominations, even if you have to do this against your clergy,
for many now have fallen in with the modernists, the socialists,
the communists, and some the satanists. Therefore, My children,
I make known to you the crisis that lies ahead. (vol II page 228)
JULY 25, 1979 - You shall not win souls and neither shall
you enter Heaven when you use humanism and modernism and change
as your approach. Heaven gave you a full plan for the redemption
of souls. You will not change this plan to suit the basic carnal
nature of man. (vol II page 234)
AUGUST 4, 1979 - I say unto the clergy, My Son's priests and the clergy of the world! You have been blinded because of pride and arrogance. Your minds are confused with worldliness, humanism and modernism. Pray on your knees! Take your heads out of the fog now while there is time, for your time is running out. Redeem yourselves in the eyes of the Eternal Father now. ........
There are many false prophets in the world now bringing you doctrines
of demons, peppered for activity with humanism and modernism,
socialism and communism, and all of the 'isms' that come down
under one major heading of satanism, for they are all promoted
by Lucifer for the eventual destruction and downfall of mankind.
(vol II page 238)
SEPTEMBER 14, 1979 - Yes, you are all now being tested.
Sadly the young, the children, the youth of your world are the
major victims now because of the greed of many who have given
themselves over to humanistic seeking joining with all manner
of evil under the guise of humanism, communism, socialism and
satanism. As I warned you in the past, Lucifer and his agents
must enter into the body of a fallen soul to work his will. (vol
II page 247)
SEPTEMBER 28, 1979 - It is not without reason that all
of the past descendants of Peter guided you well against the false
precepts of modernism and humanism in My Son's Church and the
world. And now, My children, it is of a fact by their fruits will
they be known. And what have been the fruits of this humanistic
and modernistic approach but discord, disunity and a loss of souls
to Heaven. (vol II page 252)
OCTOBER 2, 1979 - My children, it is a delusion for mankind
to believe that a form and manner of humanism shall save the world.
Modernism shall destroy the world and My Son's Church; but not
the foundation, for My Son is the foundation. Though the
walls may crumble, the pillars may shake, the foundation is solid;
for it is My Son, and it shall be rebuilt, after the great Chastisement,
to its former glory. The Eternal Father has full control
over your world, though, in your free will now, He will allow
you to follow your own course to destruction. .........St. Theresa:
Even my sisters in the convent must remain steadfast in their
Faith and the rules. They must not give themselves over to modernism
and humanism, for chastity, an example for all mankind, my children.
That is what Our Lady has said to you in the past, and yet you
have discarded Her counsel. And why? For such a short time that
many will be upon earth, why do you discard this counsel? (vol
II page 254)
The kernels that survive in a store often fall on rocks and don't
bloom and bring forth and bear fruit. But now, as I look upon
My House, My Church upon earth, I find you have opened the doors
to thieves and robbers. All manner of heresy abounds now in the
hearts of man. You have turned from your God, and you are forming
false gods of worship based on a humanistic way of life............You
shall not modernize My Church. For you shall not change My Church
to suit man, but you must reverse the course of man to bring him
to his God. For I have given you the grace in your vocations to
gather My sheep, and you have chosen to scatter them! (vol II
page 255)
OCTOBER 6, 1979 - My children,
clergy in My Son's House, His Church upon earth; I understand
your bewilderment; I as your Mother understand your concern. But
many of you have your heads and your hearts in the clouds, befogged
by humanism, deluded by modernism and your scientific manner of
thinking, with the reasoning of man, but the knowledge of God.
(vol II page 258)
NOVEMBER 20, 1979 - Every single man, woman, and child
must one day die in his human body. Is it worth renouncing your
Faith, rejecting the light and giving yourselves over to pleasures
of the flesh, materialism, and all manner of political pursuits
of communism and humanism. For what? For your own destruction.
(vol II page 261)
NOVEMBER 24, 1979 - You believe you can cast aside the
commandments of the Eternal Father and exist in peace? No, My
children, already your world has given full evidence of what happens
when you become arrogant and prideful and seek to rule as little
gods upon earth. You cast aside all religious foundation build
new religions that are guided by false doctrines of humanism and
modernism and satanism. Oh, My children, you never learn from
your past, because you are now in a state far worse than in the
times of Noe and Sodom. And what then shall be your fate? (vol
II page 265)
DECEMBER 24, 1979 - My Son, His Heart is torn by the manner
in which you have rejected His way; even reaching into the hearts
of the clergy. He has been turned away by many of them; for they
have given themselves over to pursuits and pleasures of the flesh,
succumbing to the errors of modernism so prevalent now in your
nation and throughout your world. The modernism has produced bad
fruits. (vol II page 268)
JUNE 18, 1980 - Your nation, the United States of America,
has been now, the proud eagle has been plucked by satan; and as
such shall be cleansed by trial and suffering and war. humanism
and modernism has set you on the road to satanism. Your country
and many countries of the world now have adopted the worship of
false idols. (vol II page 273)
OCTOBER 2, 1980 - There is only one way to restore your
world to peace, and that is by following the way of My cross.
You cannot change My words to bring them in line with mankind's
own egotistical ways. You will find that humanism and modernism
shall bring much suffering upon mankind. (vol II page 274)
JUNE 13, 1981 - The way to Heaven is a simple way. It cannot
be compromised; it cannot be modernized; it cannot be cast aside
or a new religion started. For your religion will be of man, of
humanism, and modernism, and satanism, and all the 'isms' that
destroy mankind in the end. (vol II page 287)
AUGUST 14, 1981 - In the name of modernism, in the name
of communism, in the name of humanism you have fallen into error
and discord. Chaos in My Son's Church, the falling away of souls
from the Eucharist, the Bread of life. My children, without the
Bread of life within you, you cannot sustain yourselves long in
your world now. (vol II page 294)
JUNE 18, 1982 - And you must always wear your sacramentals.
Do not abandon them to modernism and humanism. (vol II page 306)
MARCH 18, 1983 - My child and My children, you must impress
this upon the clergy in a kind and charitable manner; you will
tell them that they must restore the good Book to its natural,
to its natural being, which has given way to modernism and humanism.
By this I mean, My child and My children, that this knowledge
of hell and purgatory has been removed from among you. The children
are growing up in a world that has been given to satan, and there
is not much that you can do at this time other that pray, do penance,
and guard your homes well. You will protect your children by indoctrinating
them into the legion of good, purified souls who follow Jesus,
My Jesus; with this prayer: My Jesus, my Confidence! (vol II page
380)
M E S
S A G E S
JULY 25, 1985 (MSG) - I say now, My children, that you
must understand there are great graces given for reading the Bible,
even a short time of fifteen minutes; you will be graced by indulgences.
Have you forgotten, My children, in the modernization of My Son's
Church, have you forgotten the meaning of indulgences? They are
applicable to the time you may have to put in purgatory, My children............Now,
My child, I must tell you, since much of your penance for the
priesthood has been accepted, My child, I at first chose not to
mention the sorrow We have because of the manner in which My House
upon earth is being continued, a House, because of modernism,
satanism and seeking the profound, not in the history of My House,
but in the new modern way of doing things. This new modern way
has been promoted by satan. ..........Yes, My child, I must tell
you, since much of your penance for the priesthood has been accepted,
My child, I at first chose not to mention the sorrow We have because
of the manner in which My House upon earth is being continued,
a House, because of modernism, satanism, and seeking the profound,
not in the history of My House, but in the new modern way of doing
things. This new modern way has been promoted by satan.
SEPTEMBER 14, 1985 (MSG) - My child and My children, there
must not be any allowances made for the sacrilegious acts of those
who call themselves humanists, and, also, those who promote homosexuality
in the name of freedom; freedom of religion, freedom of what you
want to do; do anything you want, as long as it offends your God.
That is what We hear coming up to Us from Heaven. That is what
We hear coming up to Us, High into the heavens, I hear - I hear
the saints crying, 'How long, O Lord, will you accept this carnage
upon earth? When shall we restore it to its former beauty and
purity?'
OCTOBER 5, 1985 (MSG) - You will tell mankind that the
sins of the flesh shall send many souls to hell. My child, the
need for materialism is wrong. And the need for modernizing the
world and My Son's Church is wrong. And passing over the grievous
sin of immorality and, also, pornography, and all the other evils,
are placed under the heading of humanism, even accepting without
a frown, or proper attention to a sin, in accepting the aftermath
of AIDS, received through inhuman relationships.
NOVEMBER 1, 1985 (MSG) - You will see all these things
come to pass that We have warned you of for years. My Mother has
been speaking to you for now fifteen earth-years, over and over,
repeating what you must know to save your family and your own
soul, and your children's souls. And what do you know? Modernism!
That's what stymies mankind, modernism! Nothing was ever good
enough; God the Father was not good enough. They're seeking other
beings on other planets. For what?
SEPTEMBER 27, 1986 (MSG) - My child and My children, how
long can I go about your earth going from place to place, hinder
and yon, as your Mother, praying with you, solacing the nations
that suffer from their own laxity. We ask for prayer, atonement,
and sacrifice. And what do We get? We have theologians who now
consider themselves as gods upon earth. They are setting up a
new world religion, a one world religion based on humanism and
modernism. This will not continue much longer, My children. It
has taken many earth-years to develop these theories. And those
who have their heads in the clouds (though they wear the purple
hats and red hats), those who have become blinded from the excessive
love of luxury and materialism, shall be lost in the chaos.........My
child, Veronica, it does Our hearts well, and We feel very comforted
to know that has not been lost upon earth. We have watched now
the teachings of the children in most of the houses upon earth
of My Son, and I must say: I shed tears of pity for the parents,
for it is best now if the parents look well into the teaching
of their children in the schools, the Catholic schools of the
world. Because they will find that the theologians have crept
in now with modernism and humanism. And your children must be
protected.
OCTOBER 1, 1988 (MSG) - The Eternal Father set up women
not to be priests and not to be murderers, but to be with the
head of the household a guiding light for their children. Each
child to the Eternal Father is a pure blessing upon mankind, but
all this has been lost in the name of modernism. Immodesty reigns
in your country. There are many reasons why the Eternal Father
feels that it is now time to do something about all of these abnormalities.
OCTOBER 6, 1988 (MSG) - Repeat after Me, My child, the
words given on the Mount. This is the way you must pray to the
Eternal Father: Our Father, Who art in Heaven, Hallowed be Thy
name; Thy Kingdom come, Thy will be done, On earth as it is in
Heaven. Give us this day our daily bread, And forgive us our trespasses,
As we forgive those who trespass against us. And lead us not into
temptation, But deliver us from all evil. Amen...........Now I
asked you to say that prayer because it soon will be forgotten
upon earth. The modernists seek to remove it now from the books
in the schools. You, My child, will see that this prayer to the
Eternal Father is printed up, and given out to all the children
within your means............Mothers must now take full precedence
for the children. In other words teachers have given themselves
over now to all forms of Modernism, and pacifying those that are
evil in their teachings. They do not stand on their two feet solidly
before their bishops, who are doing wrong in the teaching of their
children. It will be up to the parents at this time to go forward
and be a true parent in the eyes of God by teaching their children
at home.
And one more prayer must not be forgotten. But Our modernists
are casting it aside. Repeat this, My child: And Act of Contrition...........You
see, My child, that also will be cast from the books this coming
year. The children are being taught unity, but world unity. The
world is striving and fast heading for a one-world religion, and
also a one-world government. But this will be a godly government:
It will be one of communistic nature. .......Mothers must now
take full precedence for their children. In other words, My child,
they must be the teachers now; for those who were teachers have
given themselves over now to all forms of Modernism, and pacifying
those that are evil in their teachings. They do not stand on their
two feet solidly before their bishops, who are doing wrong in
the teaching of their children. It will be up to the parents at
this time to go forward and be a true parent in the eyes of God
by teaching their children at home. ................My child and
My children, listen to this well, guard your children. Do not
let them be influenced by their teachers today, for modernism
has set in, and also immodesty. There are many teachers whose
example are poor to the children; therefore, it is now the duty
of each parent to guard their children's souls. Otherwise, the
day will come when they will shed great tears of sorrow, not knowing
in what realm their children lie, now that they have passed over
the veil.
MARCH 18, 1989 (MSG) - My child and My children, the United
States of America now is in dire conflict with its conscience.
But you must remember: Without My Son they cannot succeed. Slowly
but surely, against all the counsel from Heaven of the past nineteen
years, man has become more scurrilous and more antagonistic towards
My Son until he has even entered My Son's Church, seeking to cast
aside all tradition and all knowledge of the supernatural, bringing
a mode of modernism and humanism into My Son's Church. This has
forced many a good soul to lose his way and leave the Church.
JUNE 18, 1990 (MSG) - My child, you will also make it known
that We are not happy to see the world enter all of Our convents.
They discard the habits, they're no longer maidens of purity.
And I tell you, My children, that cannot be tolerated. Modernism
must not be a way of life for Our dedicated. Our nuns have to
have discipline, My children. Do not bring the world into the
convents. I ask that the convents remain free of all television
and radios, and return to their prayer life.
JUNE 18, 1991 (MSG) - My child, I have great news for you
this evening, but it is not one to bring a smile to your face.
The world has not progressed as the Eternal Father has asked.
Man has become obsessed with sin. I tell you now, in the Trinity,
that unless you listen now, your world will be planet-struck...................I
know, My child, this frightens you, but it cannot be held back
much longer. The world has become polluted with all forms of "ism,"
communism, atheism, humanism, all distracters of the soul. Man
has not progressed as the Eternal Father has deemed them to be.
They are now agents of hell. Many have sold their souls to get
to the head. Souls are falling into the abyss as fast as the snowflakes
that come from the heavens.
JUNE 18, 1993 (MSG) - How can you, My clergy, lead others
when you have adopted a mode of humanism catering to mankind?
You do not heed the spirits of My children upon earth. As such
you cannot enter the Kingdom!
MONUMENTS - See Sacramentals: Monuments/Statues
MORALITY/IMMORALITY
NOVEMBER 21, 1970 - The conditions of your Country is not
an 'Accident of Fate' as some would place the cause. It is the
method used for destruction, by promoting moral decay! (vol I
page 17)
APRIL 1, 1972 - A country that loses its morality has placed
one foot already in hell! Servitude, desecration, all will reap
what has been sown. Floods, great heat; you will have visited
upon you a plague! Recognize now, the finger of death will be
placed upon your earth. (vol I page 49)
MAY 10, 1972 - The mystery in woman is her greatest asset.
Satan seeks to take away women's identity. The Holy Bible has
in prophecy; the time will become in the end that woman will seek
to be as men. They will wear his clothes and want to 'eat his
bread, (be as a man in the fields). So Our fair flowers are being
plucked from the garden on earth. The reality of disintegration
of the strong standards of morality and living with constructive
purpose are all about you. Darkness covers the earth. We carry
the Light. Light your candles with Us. Sacrifice, prayers, atonement,
works! (vol I page 52)
MARCH 18, 1974 - Yes, My child, Our hearts are heavy. Immodesty,
immorality, fornication, all the abominations that destroy the
soul have captured many souls for satan. The example in the home
is poor. Woe, unto the days, that last day, when parents will
look upon children and they will see the judgment of the Father
upon themselves and the children. (vol I page 173)
MARCH 24, 1974 - Immorality, uncleanness, destruction of
the Temple of God, the darkest of evils have entered into the
hearts of many. The children, whatever shall become of the children?
The teachers, lying teachers, with falsehoods, half-truths and
abominations. (vol I page 177)
Your city is a cesspool of degradation. Your city shall not escape
the punishment planned by the Father. This punishment, this great
Chastisement shall be meted in measure of the numbers of countless
murders committed within your city and the cities of the world;
cesspools of sin! (vol I page 205)
JULY 25, 1974 - Your country is on the road to its own
destruction as were many countries of the past. Think, explore
the history of your country and the world. Your morality is your
scale! Strip your country of its morality and your country will
fall, the world will fall. (vol I page 235)
SEPTEMBER 28, 1974 - Know, My child, that your country
is in great error, and is falling into great sin! And when your
morality has gone and has changed to immorality, know that your
country has fallen! For it is the path that all that fall to the
enemies of God lead. Recognize why you have fallen! Because of
the simple truth that you have turned from your Creator. (vol
I page 269)
OCTOBER 2, 1974 - Immoral practices are being condoned
in the homes! We see the home life of the children being destroyed!
What example as parents do you give to your children! As you sow,
so shall you reap! The sins of the parents shall be visited upon
the children! Many parents will shed bitter tears, but too late!
T-O-O L-A-T-E! (vol I page 272)
JUNE 18, 1975 - I say unto you, a degenerate generation,
that you shall reap the reward of your immorality, your licentious
conduct, and your leading astray the young souls in your care!
(vol I page 378)
AUGUST 21, 1975 - My Son looks upon a generation that has
given itself to pleasures of the flesh, debasement, sensuality
and sexuality are rampant in the hearts of many. You will know
that as the morality of a country goes, so goes the country on
the road of damnation. (vol I page 404)
JANUARY 31, 1976 - I repeat, the Red Hat has fallen and
the Purple Hat is being misled. I cry to you, through the merciful
heart of the Eternal Father, turn back now! A new moral theology
straight, coming straight up from hell! (vol I page 469)
FEBRUARY 10, 1976 - The evil has accelerated. Immodesty
and impiety are prevalent in your world. A country is known by
the moral values, My children. In the history of your world, if
you consult and look, My children, you will find that your country
and many in your world are now proceeding and many in your world
are now proceeding along the same course taken before the fall
of an empire!................The destruction of moral values,
the turning from the Commandments of the Eternal Father, all has
happened in the past to bring destruction and a change, just as
now you proceed to your own destruction in the name of change!
(vol I page 472)
JUNE 12, 1976 - My children, whatever shall become of you!
You dress in nakedness, you come into My Son's House in nakedness.
Immorality is widespread throughout your world. Read, My children,
and learn: When a country has reached a point of no return, it
has always started with the fall of morals! (vol I page 501)
In these days, My children, the signs of the times come fast upon
you. There will be no charity of heart; selfishness shall abound.
There will be little light of piety. Morality, the word shall
not be accepted. Sin has become a way of life. (vol I page 502)
JUNE 24, 1976 - My children, there are many candles in
your world, a world that has fast gone into spiritual darkness
and corruption. Immorality has stricken the children. Immorality
is bringing your country, your nation, America the Beautiful,
the Great, onto a road to its own destruction. You will celebrate,
My children, your past, your present, but what have you given
for your future, a nation that has gathered the material and lost
the spiritual? (vol I page 507)
AUGUST 5, 1976 - When you, as a nations give yourselves
over to debasement, immorality, and turn your backs upon your
God, denying His Divinity, and denying His very existence among
you, My children, the Eternal Father has no other recourse but
to chastise you. It would be more advantageous, My children, if
your men of learning should set themselves to find the truth.
And what is the truth, My children, but the knowledge given to
you by God the Father, and not the knowledge of man. (vol I page
518)
AUGUST 21, 1976 - The world has become a cesspool of sin
and error. No country has escaped the contamination. America the
beautiful has succumbed to the evils. The morality of the young
has fallen to the evil created by the masters of deceit. (vol
I page 525)
SEPTEMBER 7, 1976 - I repeat, My children: When the morals
of your country have fallen, your country shall fall into grave
error, which shall lead to a great Chastisement for your country
and the world. How many warnings must be set upon you? How many
lives shall be lost needlessly? Shall man accept, without trying
to avoid, a War that will encompass your whole earth to its very
destruction? (vol I page 529)
OCTOBER 2, 1976 - Learn a simple lesson from the past,
My children. When the morals of a country start to go down into
darkness, and the teachings turn from God to man, that country
will soon be ended. First the spiritual life and then the material
life of your country shall be destroyed. (vol I page 546)
OCTOBER 6, 1976 - O My child, could I have but spared you
this cross I would have, but you will learn much from it. No,
My child, you did no wrong in exposing his folly. The morals of
the young must not be corrupted. Nudity and nakedness shall never
be condoned by My Son or Heaven, and no man shall take his religion
and use it to twist out of context the words of the Bible, or
to use these words upon young minds, pure minds of innocence,
to gain a control by brainwashing them to suit his own purpose.
And this purpose is not of God. (vol I page 547)
V O
L U M E I I
MAY 18, 1977 - Your world and many nations of earth shall
receive a crucible of suffering. The degeneration of morals within
a nation is the gauge that the Eternal Father will use for punishment.
(vol II page 42)
AUGUST 13, 1977 - He is here. He has entered upon your
country in 1975. Your children have been victims to him. The spread
of drugs was for reason; to break down the morals and to give
your children over to satan. Your children have been desecrated
in black mass. Your children have been desecrated in the schools
and the governments by the government leaders who do not care.
(vol II page 75)
OCTOBER 1, 1977 - There will be degradation, for the morals
of your country are being destroyed. There will be no honor, for
there is no honor among thieves; and there are thieves who have
stolen into My House, My Church. They are robbers, seeking to
destroy My children. (vol II page 91)
NOVEMBER 19, 1977 - I watch My children running to an fro,
marrying and giving in marriage, neither caring nor thinking of
what lies ahead, never preparing for their entrance into Heaven.
They push aside the knowledge of immortality and substitute all
manner of immorality and sin. (vol II page 101)
Your country, the eagle, has fallen and been plucked by satan.
The great bird no longer flies high. No, I say unto you; because
of your immorality, your materialistic seeking, you scientific
pursuits to outdo the Eternal Father in His plan to mankind, you
bring upon yourselves great trial and punishment. (vol II page
103)
NOVEMBER 21, 1977 - Immorality, homosexuality, and what
do We hear now but permissiveness in sex, even from the mouths
of Our trained ones known as theologians? Have you all lost your
minds or your souls to satan? Human sexuality you call it? Animal
sexuality I call it! You fornicate like animals. And why did the
Father deem it necessary to intervene upon Sodom and Gomorrah?
(vol II page 107)
DECEMBER 31, 1977 - I cry to you, My children, that immorality
is the gauge, the measuring point for the fall of a nation. Your
country, My children, the United States, has fallen to satan.
The great eagle has been plucked by sin. Corruption has entered
into the highest places of your government and in My Son's Church.
I say unto you, and say this with counsel from high, the Lord
high God in Heaven, the Father of all creation, that as you sow
so shall you reap! (vol II page 112)
APRIL 1, 1978 - Veronica: Many skeptics say that there
is no proof in the Bible in relation to the immorality existent
in our country. Well, if man stops believing in the words of God
in the Holy Bible, man is left to his own diversions; and the
road that leads only to destruction if God abandons man to himself.
Now, in St. Paul, who is one of the founders of our Church under
God's direction, and of course those who are trying to rebuild
the Church in the Houses of man instead of God are not even acknowledging
St. Paul as being a founding father. Well, say let us read from
St. Paul's letter to the Corinthians Chapter, it would be Chapter
3, no, Chapter 6, third part. He speaks of the evils of immorality.
Now he said: Now God has raised up the Lord and will also raise
us up by His power. Do you know that your bodies are members of
Christ? Shall I then take the members of Christ and make them
members of a harlot? By no means! (Now Paul is referring to all
of the immorality existent in our country and many countries throughout
the world; I would say, most or all of the earth now has this
terrible stigma of immorality, defiling of the human body by humanistic
approaches, by men consorting with men and doing all defilement's
to the human body.)
Do you not know that your bodies are members of Christ? Shall
I then take the members of Christ and make them members of a harlot?
By no means, no! Or do you not know that he who cleaves to a harlot
become one body with her for the two it says shall be one flesh.
Flee immorality. Every sin that a man commits is outside the body,
but the immoral man sins against his own body. Or do you not know
that your members are the temple of the Holy Spirit who is in
you, whom you have from God and that you are not your own keeper
for you have been bought at a great price. Glorify God and bear
Him in your body. (vol II page 139)
JULY 25, 1978 - Sin in your country and in many countries
throughout the world has become a way of life. In the history
of a fallen nation you will always find it is preceded by a fall
into immorality and sin. For a nation that has been given plenty,
it has been used now, this excess in luxury, to destroy souls.
(vol II page 175)
AUGUST 5, 1978 - As you continue daily, the sins of the
flesh are increasing. The offenses to morality are increasing.
Man has taken his body, his human body which is the temple for
his spirit and is defiling his flesh, casting out the light until
you will have living bodies with dead souls. My children, when
this happens will you call yourselves human, as murders will abound
upon earth? Charity will grow cold. All sins of the flesh being
committed and multiplies unto murder! I could go on, My children,
listing again and again the aberrations to you, and for what?
(vol II page 179)
SEPTEMBER 28, 1978 - My children, you must be very careful
now what you read in your medias because your country is controlled.
Most nations of your earth now are controlled by the forces of
evil. Before you make any judgments, My children, in matters of
faith and morals, you will read your good Bible. And do not accept
any changes in the Book of Life and Love. (vol II page 196)
AUGUST 4, 1979 - In the days ahead now left for the redemption
of your world, great trial shall come upon mankind. Your values,
your morals, must be restored, restored in a manner pleasing to
the Eternal Father, your God. He does not judge by the manner
of mankind. The ways of the Eternal Father are far beyond the
understanding of mankind. (vol II page 237)
AUGUST 14, 1979 - You understand well, My children, that
the major concern of the Eternal Father is for the salvation of
the souls of all mankind. We look upon you now, and it grieves
Our Hearts in Heaven to find now brother against brother, sister
against sister, murders abounding upon earth; atheism, communism,
socialism, and all the "isms" that directly lead to
the control of Lucifer and satanism. And what can you do now about
the advance of this evil, My children? There is only one recourse
now to save mankind. Your nation, My child and My children, and
all of the nations upon earth. have now been reduced to a state
of moral decay. It is a major sign for the fall of a nation. (vol
II page 240)
OCTOBER 6, 1979 - Many clergy have given themselves over
to pleasures of the flesh. Many have fallen into sin and heresy,
and have cast aside the truth of their vocations. Many now rebel
against their leader, their God-given leader, your Vicar. In matters
of Faith and Morals, man must not change the God-given laws, coming
from the Seat of Peter, and established through Tradition upon
earth through My Son's Church. (vol II page 258)
OCTOBER 5, 1985 (MSG) - You will tell mankind that the
sins of the flesh shall send many souls to hell. My child, the
need for materialism is wrong. And the need for modernizing the
world and My Son's Church is wrong. And passing over the grievous
sin of immorality and, also, pornography, and all the other evils,
are placed under the heading of humanism; even accepting without
a frown, or proper attention to a sin, in accepting the aftermath
of AIDS, received through inhuman relationships. I say 'inhuman'
because those relationships are not from God, My children, but
they are from satan. Homosexuality shall always be condemned because
it is against the nature of man; and it is a violation of all
human morality, and shall not be tolerated by the Eternal Father
in the Trinity. .........My child, I want you to do all you can
to foster the return of morality and morality to the medias; and,
also, to those you love; your neighbors, your children. And do
not be affrighted or flee from the sinner, for he, too, can be
saved by your effort and your prayers. As this child was born,
so he must return; a simple child, to the Eternal Father. If you
remember, My child, the lessons from Theresa; yes, St. Theresa,
you will remember that it is a simple way to Heaven; if you accept
the Eternal Father into your heart, you will always be His children
of love.
NOVEMBER 1, 1985 (MSG) - How can a great country like the
United States fall, you may say, My child? You ask Me in your
heart, I read your heart. I will tell you why. Because they have
given themselves over to satan. When a country has lost its morality
and seeks the pleasures of the flesh, giving over, themselves
over, to all manner of abominations, like homosexuality, and condoning
this up the highest courts of the land, then that country shall
fall.
JUNE 18, 1992 (MSG) - As I counseled you all in the past,
I said to you as quote: "This is a ruse," I repeat again.
This is the visit to your country, the once great and illustrious
United States of the world, the nation, the United States of America,
the illustrious country that now is leading into a path of darkness.
This has been allowed because of the dire straits of your nation.
The morality has now been cast aside. Darkness has fallen upon
mankind. ............The biggest threshold for the United States
and other countries of the world is if they are willing to go
forth and overcome the evil within their own countries. The morality
has fallen in most nations of the world now, and this cries to
Heaven for either repentance or punishment........My child and
my children, you understand it is a known fact that when the morals
of a country fall, that country will be destroyed in one way or
another. Wars are always a punishment for man's sins.
MOVIES
HAIL MARY
OCTOBER 5, 1985 (MSG) - O My children, My Mother's heart
is now torn asunder. I hear those words that are making a mockery
of Myself, My children. Yes, My child Veronica, I am referring
to the pornographic movie called, "The Hail Mary."....My
Son has wanted and wished that direct action be taken against
those who have had even a small measure in partnership with those
who have sought to blaspheme My name, and, also, to cut My heart
asunder.............My child, all those who promote that moving
picture shall be destroyed...............I know there are many
who shall parade against this horror, My child, but let them know
that by example others may come to their senses and seek the blessings
of a God Who has given them more than enough time to make amends...........My
child and My children, I ask you all to come forth as citizens
of Heaven...(That makes you happy, My child does it not? Well,
My child, you shall be citizens of Heaven one day! I ask you now
to do whatever is within your human nature, and directed by the
Holy Spirit, to oust these interlopers with their blasphemous
movie.........I shall not stand by and allow My Mother to be debauched
and defamed. I will take action, great action, against the theater
where this picture shall be shown.
NOVEMBER 1, 1985 (MSG) - I wish at this time to extend
to one among you, Vincent, Our greatest heart of approval, and
We wish to say to you: We in Heaven thank you for the fact that
you went forward with others to right the wrong to My Mother when
they produced that abominable motion picture called, "Hail,
Mary."............Even the Pope, himself, wished this movie
to be stopped, yet for the sake of money they sold out the Eternal
Father. They sold Him out like they did to Me, many years ago,
for pieces of silver. Yes, My children, that is all it amounts
to, money! That is the reason for the showing of that picture.
But how many could stay there without vomiting for what came forward
from that screen..............I say again: I extend Our Hearts
to all who made such a great effort of show to stop the abomination
from being committed in the theaters of New York. Surely, My children,
if they could get it out of Italy, you can get it out of the United
States, and Canada, which it is approaching.
MURDER
V O L
U M E I
JULY 1, 1970 - Pray for those who have not lived. He breathes
the Spirit of Life at the moment of conception! Do not murder
the little ones! His Hand grows heavy! Many souls will be lost.
All Heaven is saddened. Man walks the road to his own destruction.
Pray for your brothers. Bring My Message to the world. So many
souls will be lost! Man has forgotten My Son! It hurts to be turned
away. Love My Son as He loves you! You can't bargain with God
and man! One you will love the other you will hate! (vol I page
10)
NOVEMBER 1, 1970 - My Rosary.....How long, how long! I
warn you now that My Son will not tolerate the sacrifice of the
young for the man of perdition, the man of sin. You must stop
these murders now, for I cannot bear to see the slaughter of the
little innocent souls! A Warning will be from My Son's Merciful
Heart. This Warning will be governed by the extent of the fall
of man. (vol I page 16)
DECEMBER 7, 1970 - You agents of satan murder! Yes, you
murder the little ones. Next you will choose the aged and infirm.
Vile vipers of the abyss!! The command of the Father is thou shalt
not kill! Hell will overflow with your souls. (vol I page 18)
MAY 19, 1971 - Oh, My Jesus, how well the darkness covers
the land. We look upon hate, greed, paganism and murder. The darkest
of sins are being committed! Guard your children from the unholy
ray. Keep the monuments (statues) in your home, keep the Rosary
about your neck. These were not given for decoration. We cannot
bear the blasphemies against Us much longer. We admonish you to
save your soul and the souls of your loved ones. We are always
with you, just raise your hearts in prayer to Us. Your prayers
and sacrifices will be needed for your priests. (vol I page 27)
AUGUST 5, 1971 - The Eternal Father commands that you stop
these murders at once. You will not destroy the lives of the unborn.
Human life is sacred in the eyes of Your God. No man has a right
to destroy a life. The Father sends this life to you and only
He will decide when it is to be sent back to the Kingdom. ...............Do
not, My children, be deceived by the words of the evil ones about
you, who cry to you of no space left for man, there is space for
everyone. My Father has a plan for every life He sends. (vol
I page 32)
DECEMBER 31, 1971 - Each soul placed on earth by the Eternal
Father has been given a mission. There are no accidents of placement
from Heaven. Each soul is sent from Heaven. Woe to evil man who
acts on the murder of one of these souls sent by the Father to
earth. Your land has become a cesspool of evil! The world is a
cesspool of evil! You will not destroy any more of these souls
in their infancy (abortion) You will not cut off this life from
your God! You thwart the plan of the Father! Your punishment will
be great unless you repent of your ways now! (vol I page 41,42)
MAY 30, 1973 - It truly rains teardrops from Heaven. The
Father calls for a heavy penance upon a world that has used murder
for worldly gain. We look and count the numbers of innocent souls,
souls that have not lived out their mission on earth and being
sent to Us untimely. Your generation is one that calls for heavy
penance! The Father is merciful and all chastisement will be for
reason. (vol I page 102)
DECEMBER 24, 1973 - Those teachers who have misled, under
the direction of satan, the young souls, better that they had
died in their mothers' womb, than to face the road that lies before
them leading to the abyss and the fires! All who murder for gain
shall be destroyed! All that is rotten will fall! All who share
in the murder of the young, whether for gain or in arrogance seek
to go beyond the Father, they, too, shall fall with the rotten
fruit. (vol I page 151)
DECEMBER 29, 1973 - The Warning which is yet to come upon
your city and the world has been delayed. However, the murders
in your city have not ceased. The murders of the unborn must cease
now or your city will fall. All who have even a small measure
of participation in the slaughter of the holy innocents shall
be burned in the abyss. (vol I page 153)
MARCH 18, 1974 - My child, you do not have to feel embarrassment for showing your human feelings, for I too am a mother. Yes, My child, there is a plan for each life the Father sends to earth. That is why We are much grieved, for many of the souls that the Father has allowed to be conceived